Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n bishop_n church_n see_v 3,056 5 3.9474 3 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27050 A treatise of episcopacy confuting by Scripture, reason, and the churches testimony that sort of diocesan churches, prelacy and government, which casteth out the primitive church-species, episcopacy, ministry and discipline and confoundeth the Christian world by corruption, usurpation, schism and persecution : meditated in the year 1640, when the et cætera oath was imposed : written 1671 and cast by : published 1680 by the importunity of our superiours, who demand the reasons of our nonconformity / by Richard Baxter. Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1681 (1681) Wing B1427; ESTC R19704 421,766 406

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

bishop_n and_o his_o chancellor_n and_o other_o officer_n be_v over_o we_o all_o the_o magistrate_n civil_a governmeut_n of_o the_o church_n i_o shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o as_o have_v no_o exception_n against_o it_o the_o sacerdotal_a or_o spiritual_a power_n call_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n determine_v who_o shall_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o partake_v of_o its_o communion_n and_o exercise_v other_o act_n of_o spiritual_a discipline_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o this_o power_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n in_o foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la publico_fw-la vel_fw-la exteriore_fw-la though_o also_o in_o the_o govern_v presbyter_n in_o foro_fw-la privato_fw-la interiore_fw-la as_o they_o may_v private_o comfort_v a_o penitent_a person_n and_o declare_v god_n promise_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n 3._o the_o archbishop_n have_v it_o in_o eminency_n as_o also_o the_o power_n of_o confirm_v the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o province_n and_o the_o power_n of_o consecrate_v bishop_n with_o two_o other_o and_o the_o power_n of_o convocate_a provincial_a synod_n upon_o the_o king_n prescript_n and_o of_o moderate_v in_o they_o the_o power_n of_o receive_v appeal_n and_o of_o visit_v the_o whole_a province_n yea_o to_o receive_v appeal_n from_o the_o low_a judge_n omit_v the_o middle_a one_o and_o to_o exercise_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o any_o vacant_a diocese_n under_o they_o they_o have_v 4._o power_n of_o dispensation_n in_o all_o cause_n not_o judge_v contrary_a to_o god_n word_n wherever_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n and_o where_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o power_n if_o the_o king_n or_o council_n permit_v it_o they_o they_o may_v dispense_v with_o the_o eat_v of_o flesh_n on_o fasting-day_n with_o marry_v without_o previous_a publication_n with_o divers_a irregularity_n and_o sometime_o may_v abolish_v simoniacum_fw-la ambitum_fw-la they_o may_v grant_v commendam_n and_o dispense_v with_o nonresidence_n and_o with_o the_o keep_n of_o divers_a church_n call_v benefice_n in_o several_a case_n and_o with_o a_o son_n succeed_v his_o father_n and_o with_o layman_n possess_n the_o church-maintenance_n call_v prebend_n the_o bishop_n who_o take_v place_n in_o parliament_n of_o other_o baron_n as_o the_o archbishop_n do_v of_o duke_n 5._o be_v all_o choose_v real_o by_o the_o king_n who_o nominate_v in_o a_o writ_n to_o the_o dean_n and_o chapter_n the_o man_n who_o they_o must_v choose_v who_o pro_fw-la forma_fw-la do_v choose_v he_o never_o contradict_v the_o king_n nomination_n their_o proper_a office_n consist_v in_o the_o power_n of_o order_n and_o of_o jurisdiction_n as_o they_o distinguish_v they_o their_o power_n of_o order_n be_v threefold_a 1._o to_o ordain_v priest_n and_o deacon_n 2._o to_o consecrate_v church_n and_o burying_n place_n 3._o to_o confirm_v child_n after_o baptism_n when_o they_o can_v speak_v and_o say_v the_o creed_n lord_n prayer_n and_o decalogue_n and_o other_o that_o be_v not_o confirm_v in_o their_o childhood_n beside_o that_o they_o may_v be_v privy-counsellor_n lord-keeper_n of_o the_o great_a seal_n lord_n treasurer_n ambassador_n etc._n etc._n their_o ordinary_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n extend_v 1._o to_o the_o interdiction_n of_o divine_a office_n 2._o to_o public_a admonition_n and_o penance_n 3._o to_o suspension_n from_o the_o sacrament_n and_o from_o ingress_n into_o the_o church_n and_o 4._o to_o excommunication_n and_o absolution_n and_o 5._o to_o anathematism_n and_o as_o to_o minister_n 1._o they_o may_v sequester_n benefice_n 2._o they_o may_v suspend_v ab_fw-la officio_fw-la &_o beneficio_fw-la and_o forbid_v they_o to_o preach_v or_o pray_v or_o grant_v licence_n to_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v tolerate_v to_o preach_v 3._o they_o may_v deprive_v 4._o and_o depose_v minister_n by_o sentence_n verbal_a and_o degradation_n actual_o this_o church_n jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n be_v distinguish_v into_o voluntary_a and_o contentious_a 6._o the_o voluntary_a extend_v to_o abundance_n of_o thing_n grant_v they_o by_o statute_n and_o by_o common_a law_n which_o i_o pass_v by_o that_o which_o they_o claim_v both_o by_o municipal_a law_n and_o ecclesiastical_a be_v 1._o the_o probate_n of_o the_o testament_n of_o the_o dead_a 2._o the_o grant_v administration_n of_o good_n to_o the_o next_o of_o kin_n 3._o keep_v the_o bona_fw-la caduca_fw-la where_o none_o claim_v the_o inheritance_n 4._o to_o receive_v reason_n of_o administer_a and_o to_o be_v judge_n of_o they_o 5._o to_o confer_v benefice_n or_o institute_n such_o as_o other_o present_v 6._o to_o grant_v induction_n to_o the_o institute_v 7._o to_o receive_v the_o fruit_n of_o vacant_a benefice_n 8._o to_o allow_v the_o vicar_n a_o fit_a proportion_n 9_o to_o grant_v letter_n dimissory_a or_o testimonial_a 10._o to_o visit_v their_o diocese_n once_o in_o three_o year_n in_o which_o triennial_n visitation_n they_o usual_o go_v to_o one_o town_n in_o a_o county_n and_o never_o see_v the_o face_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o many_o score_n or_o hundred_o church_n about_o they_o and_o thither_o they_o summon_v the_o minister_n and_o the_o churchwarden_n and_o sides-man_n where_o one_o minister_n preach_v and_o then_o the_o minister_n must_v dine_v with_o the_o bishop_n and_o in_o court_n he_o or_o his_o officer_n give_v a_o book_n of_o print_a article_n contain_v a_o multitude_n of_o particular_n which_o the_o churchwarden_n must_v swear_v to_o present_v by_o where_o because_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o they_o some_o churchwarden_n refuse_v and_o other_o because_o of_o the_o number_n some_o say_n it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o undo_v their_o minister_n and_o neighbour_n by_o such_o presentment_n as_o for_o omit_v a_o ceremony_n for_o preach_v or_o keep_v a_o fast_a in_o private_a etc._n etc._n and_o some_o say_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v the_o oath_n and_o some_o say_n that_o if_o they_o do_v it_o they_o shall_v be_v hate_v of_o their_o neighbour_n whereupon_o those_o that_o refuse_v be_v prosecute_v to_o punishment_n and_o the_o rest_n take_v the_o oath_n and_o article_n but_o not_o one_o of_o many_o do_v present_a according_o though_o the_o canon_n inquire_v after_o the_o perjure_a and_o many_o that_o fear_v perjury_n or_o persecution_n themselves_o do_v hire_v some_o poor_a man_n to_o be_v churchwarden_n in_o their_o stead_n that_o will_v venture_v upon_o all_o i_o must_v entreat_v the_o reader_n to_o peruse_v some_o of_o their_o book_n of_o article_n especial_o such_o as_o bishop_n mountagues_n and_o bishop_n wren_n to_o see_v what_o be_v then_o inquire_v after_o dr._n zouch_v de_fw-fr jud._n eccless_n p._n 37._o §_o 1._o part._n 3._o say_v ad_fw-la judices_fw-la quod_fw-la attinet_fw-la statuto_fw-la ordinatum_fw-la quod_fw-la personae_fw-la conjugatae_fw-la dummodo_fw-la doctores_fw-la juris_fw-la civilis_fw-la fuerint_fw-la qui_fw-la ad_fw-la officium_fw-la cancellarii_n vicarii_fw-la generalis_fw-la officialis_fw-la vel_fw-la commissarii_fw-la à_fw-la majestate_fw-la regius_fw-la archiapiscopo_n episcopo_fw-la archidiacono_n aut_fw-la alio_fw-la quocunque_fw-la potestatem_fw-la habente_fw-la deputati_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnem_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la ecclesiasticam_fw-la exercere_fw-la &_o quam_fw-la libet_fw-la censuram_fw-la sive_fw-la coercitionem_fw-la ●rrogare_fw-la possint_fw-la this_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n be_v exercise_v either_o universal_o by_o a_o vicar_n general_n usual_o a_o layman_n or_o qarticular_o by_o a_o commissary_n 2._o and_o when_o he_o please_v the_o bishop_n may_v do_v it_o himself_o the_o other_o part_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n be_v call_v contentious_a and_o here_o the_o bishop_n may_v himself_o judge_v in_o some_o case_n 8._o but_o in_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o jurisdiction_n a_o civil_a lawyer_n call_v his_o chancellor_n be_v the_o judge_n this_o chancellor_n be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o layman_n which_o even_o bishop_n goodman_n of_o gloucester_n mist_n rel._n epist_n i_o have_v it_o and_o can_v produce_v it_o at_o this_o time_n under_o the_o king_n own_o hand_n and_o seal_n wherein_o he_o forbid_v that_o any_o churchman_n or_o priest_n in_o holy_a order_n be_v a_o chancellor_n and_o this_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o all_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o spiritual_a court_n for_o chancellor_n live_v only_o on_o the_o fee_n of_o the_o court_n and_o for_o they_o to_o dismiss_v a_o cause_n it_o be_v to_o lose_v so_o much_o blood_n see_v further_o in_o he_o a_o papist_n bishop_n of_o a_o protestant_a diocese_n complain_v in_o print_n that_o he_o can_v not_o get_v reform_v this_o chancellor_n keep_v a_o ordinary_a court_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o civil_a court_n where_o be_v advocate_n for_o council_n and_o proctor_n for_o plead_v 8._o certain_a man_n call_v apparitor_n who_o name_n be_v common_o a_o scorn_n among_o the_o people_n do_v from_o abroad_o the_o country_n bring_v they_o in_o accusation_n and_o summon_v the_o person_n accuse_v beside_o those_o that_o by_o plaintiff_n be_v accuse_v here_o be_v judge_v cause_n about_o church_n material_n and_o cause_n criminal_a which_o he_o that_o
many_o church_n without_o bishop_n under_o he_o and_o of_o half-presbyter_n how_o little_o he_o say_v the_o reader_n will_v soon_o see_v yea_o how_o much_o on_o our_o side_n 4._o as_o for_o hooker_n till_o his_o seven_o book_n come_v late_o out_o we_o have_v nothing_o in_o require_v he_o considerable_a of_o this_o subject_n and_o in_o that_o book_n itself_o so_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n as_o to_o our_o foresay_a two_o controversy_n as_o be_v next_o to_o nothing_o nor_o worthy_a a_o reply_n in_o his_o §_o 2._o p._n 4._o he_o attempt_v that_o which_o few_o do_v to_o give_v we_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o bishop_n which_o be_v a_o bishop_n be_v a_o minister_n of_o god_n unto_o who_o with_o permanent_a continuance_n there_o be_v give_v not_o only_o prelatical_a power_n of_o administer_a the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n which_o power_n other_o presbyter_n have_v but_o also_o a_o further_a power_n to_o ordain_v ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o a_o power_n of_o chiefty_a in_o government_n over_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o lay_v man_n a_o power_n to_o be_v by_o way_n of_o jurisdiction_n a_o pastor_n even_o to_o pastor_n themselves_o and_o then_o he_o distinguish_v of_o bishop_n at_o large_a or_o indefinite_a and_o bishop_n with_o restraint_n and_o say_v he_o mean_v the_o late_a and_o so_o you_o have_v what_o must_v be_v expect_v from_o mr._n hooker_n for_o the_o information_n of_o you_o what_o episcopacy_n he_o plead_v for_o where_o it_o be_v obvious_a how_o fraudulent_o through_o oversight_n or_o partiality_n i_o know_v not_o he_o deal_v for_o whereas_o he_o dare_v put_v no_o more_o into_o the_o definition_n of_o episcopacy_n about_o jurisdiction_n but_o a_o power_n of_o chiefty_a in_o government_n over_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o layman_n yet_o will_v not_o tell_v we_o whether_o government_n of_o layman_n under_o the_o bishop_n belong_v to_o the_o presbyter_n or_o not_o his_o word_n seem_v plain_o to_o imply_v it_o what_o use_v else_o be_v there_o for_o his_o chief_o and_o as_o well_o as_o layman_n and_o yet_o twice_o over_o he_o will_v name_v nothing_o but_o teach_v and_o sacrament_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o pastor_n as_o a_o pastor_n in_o general_a leave_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o he_o will_v neither_o affirm_v nor_o deny_v whether_o pastor_n govern_v their_o flock_n yet_o all_o that_o decantate_n book_n turn_v on_o the_o hinge_n of_o this_o lame_a definition_n which_o have_v other_o defect_n which_o i_o pass_v by_o and_o without_o this_o we_o can_v know_v what_o subject_n he_o dispute_v of_o whereas_o saravia_n well_o note_v and_o acknowledge_v three_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o ministry_n in_o general_n mr._n hooker_n who_o leave_v out_o one_o of_o they_o and_o yet_o dare_v not_o deny_v it_o shall_v have_v tell_v we_o whether_o he_o include_v it_o or_o not_o see_v it_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o most_o of_o our_o difference_n and_o we_o take_v he_o for_o no_o pastor_n or_o presbyter_n that_o be_v without_o the_o power_n of_o government_n nor_o that_o to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n in_o sensu_fw-la politico_fw-la that_o have_v no_o other_o pastor_n 2._o and_o when_o as_o one_o part_n of_o his_o adversary_n deny_v not_o at_o least_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o one_o bishop_n superiority_n in_o a_o single_a church_n as_o far_o as_o his_o description_n speak_v but_o only_o in_o many_o church_n no_o nor_o one_o archbishop_n power_n over_o many_o church_n that_o have_v their_o own_o bishop_n but_o only_o his_o power_n to_o depose_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o particular_a church_n and_o turn_v they_o all_o into_o one_o diocesan_n church_n his_o definition_n visible_o reach_v to_o no_o other_o sort_n of_o bishop_n but_o such_o as_o we_o oppose_v not_o and_o so_o he_o say_v nothing_o at_o all_o against_o we_o to_o any_o purpose_n through_o all_o his_o book_n for_o where_o after_o he_o confident_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o extent_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n alter_v not_o the_o species_n it_o be_v but_o bare_o say_v and_o by_o his_o leave_n i_o shall_v full_o prove_v the_o contrary_a anon_o and_o pag._n 4._o l._n 7._o he_o confess_v that_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la many_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o bishop_n which_o the_o time_n have_v change_v many_o a_o parsonage_n at_o this_o day_n be_v large_a than_o some_o ancient_a bishopric_n be_v it_o be_v well_o confess_v and_o i_o shall_v try_v among_o other_o thing_n whether_o the_o name_n of_o a_o bishopric_n will_v make_v a_o parsonage_n and_o a_o diocese_n to_o be_v ejusdem_fw-la speciei_fw-la and_o whether_o magnitude_n do_v not_o make_v a_o specific_a difference_n between_o the_o sea_n and_o a_o rivulet_n or_o a_o glass_n of_o water_n or_o between_o a_o ship_n and_o a_o nutshell_n and_o whereas_o page_n 6._o he_o undertake_v to_o prove_v a_o coercive_a power_n in_o bishop_n either_o he_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o common_a use_n of_o man_n or_o not_o if_o not_o he_o will_v not_o be_v understand_v &_o qui_fw-la non_fw-la u●lt_fw-la intelligi_fw-la debet_fw-la negligi_fw-la if_o he_o do_v then_o by_o coercive_a he_o must_v mean_v by_o outward_a force_n upon_o the_o body_n which_o be_v false_a and_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o magistrate_n parent_n or_o master_n and_o be_v disclaim_v by_o all_o sober_a protestant_a divine_n yea_o by_o papist_n as_o not_o at_o all_o belong_v to_o the_o pastoral_n office_n though_o we_o easy_o grant_v that_o pastor_n may_v coercere_fw-la by_o nord_a and_o so_o may_v presbyter_n sure_a yet_o no_o otherwise_o but_o by_o word_n for_o excommunication_n and_o degradation_n as_o far_o as_o belong_v to_o they_o be_v but_o word_n and_o a_o after_o forbear_v of_o their_o own_o act_n of_o communion_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o common_a use_n of_o the_o word_n coercive_a as_o apply_v to_o government_n by_o way_n of_o distinction_n how_o much_o wise_a do_v the_o more_o learned_a and_o judicious_a bishop_n bilson_n still_o distinguish_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n as_o differ_v from_o the_o magistrate_n coercive_a or_o by_o the_o sword_n yet_o note_v that_o page_n 8._o §_o 5._o l._n 7._o he_o be_v bring_v to_o acknowledge_v thou_o all_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n erect_v receive_v from_o they_o the_o same_o faith_n the_o same_o sacrament_n the_o same_o form_n of_o public_a regiment_n the_o form_n of_o regiment_n by_o they_o establish_v at_o first_o be_v that_o the_o laity_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o college_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n which_o be_v in_o every_o such_o city_n appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n these_o in_o their_o write_n they_o term_v sometime_o presbyter_n and_o sometime_o bishop_n to_o take_v one_o church_n out_o of_o a_o number_n for_o a_o pattern_n what_o the_o rest_n be_v the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o history_n of_o their_o departure_n from_o the_o apostle_n paul_n at_o miletum_n be_v say_v to_o have_v weep_v abundant_o all_o which_o speech_n do_v show_v they_o to_o have_v be_v many_o and_o by_o the_o apostle_n exhortation_n it_o may_v appear_v that_o they_o hammond_n have_v not_o each_o his_o several_a flock_n to_o feed_v but_o be_v in_o common_a appoint_v to_o feed_v that_o one_o flock_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o phrase_n of_o his_o speech_n be_v this_o attendite_fw-la gregi_fw-la look_v to_o all_o that_o one_o flock_v over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o bishop_n these_o person_n ecclesiastical_a be_v term_v then_o presbyter_n and_o bishop_n both_o etc._n etc._n and_o page_n 9_o he_o say_v the_o outward_a be_v of_o a_o church_n consist_v in_o the_o have_v of_o a_o bishop_n then_o the_o brownist_n must_v carry_v it_o that_o our_o parish_n be_v no_o true_a church_n but_o part_n of_o a_o church_n because_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n only_o a_o diocesan_n church_n have_v a_o bishop_n therefore_o only_o a_o diocesan_n be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o anon_o shall_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v but_o humane_a and_o page_n 12._o he_o thus_o expound_v hierome_n as_o hold_v episcopacy_n alterable_a alteration_n the_o church_n have_v power_n by_o universal_a consent_n upon_o urgent_a cause_n to_o take_v it_o away_o if_o thereunto_o she_o be_v constrain_v through_o the_o proud_a tyrannical_a and_o unreformable_a deal_n of_o her_o bishop_n wherefore_o lest_o bishop_n forget_v themselves_o as_o if_o none_o on_o earth_n have_v authority_n to_o touch_v their_o state_n let_v they_o continual_o bear_v in_o mind_n that_o it_o be_v rather_o the_o force_n of_o custom_n than_o any_o such_o true_a heavenly_a law_n can_v be_v show_v by_o the_o evidence_n whereof_o it_o may_v of_o a_o truth_n appear_v that_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v appoint_v presbyter_n for_o ever_o to_o be_v under_o the_o regiment_n of_o bishop_n in_o what_o sort_n soever_o they_o behave_v themselves_o let_v this_o consideration_n be_v a_o bridle_n to_o they_o let_v it_o
as_o the_o heavenly_a angel_n be_v the_o guardian_n of_o the_o church_n so_o these_o star_n be_v those_o angel_n in_o who_o person_n i_o speak_v to_o the_o church_n themselves_o that_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o candlestick_n or_o as_o the_o angel_n be_v the_o guardian_n of_o the_o church_n so_o by_o that_o title_n i_o signify_v the_o whole_a ministry_n that_o guide_v they_o and_o by_o the_o candlestick_n the_o church_n and_o i_o write_v to_o the_o whole_a for_o as_o every_o message_n begin_v with_o to_o the_o angel_n so_o it_o end_v with_o to_o the_o church_n obj._n the_o bishop_n be_v to_o deliver_v it_o to_o the_o church_n ans_fw-fr this_o be_v precarious_a 1._o the_o apostle_n write_v it_o that_o both_o pastor_n and_o people_n may_v immediate_o read_v it_o and_o do_v not_o intrust_v it_o as_o a_o unwritten_a tradition_n to_o one_o to_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o rest_n 2._o all_o the_o pastor_n be_v to_o deliver_v or_o teach_v it_o to_o the_o people_n and_o not_o one_o bishop_n only_o this_o therefore_o be_v no_o cogent_a argument_n 10._o as_o for_o the_o disputer_n for_o episcopacy_n at_o the_o isle_n of_o wight_n with_o king_n wight_n charles_n they_o manage_v saravia_n argument_n fetch_v from_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o ordinary_a part_n of_o the_o apostle_n office_n as_o he_o do_v before_o they_o and_o many_o other_o so_o well_o that_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v confute_v they_o but_o remain_v in_o doubt_n and_o therefore_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o they_o but_o that_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o case_n whether_o every_o particular_a organise_v church_n shall_v have_v a_o bishop_n or_o the_o full_a pastoral_n office_n in_o it_o 11._o as_o to_o joh._n forbes_n his_o irenic_n he_o maintain_v but_o such_o a_o episcopacy_n forbes_n as_o we_o offer_v to_o his_o majesty_n in_o bishop_n usher_n reduction_n he_o plead_v for_o such_o a_o bishop_n as_o be_v the_o moderator_n of_o a_o presbytery_n p._n 242_o 243._o and_o as_o must_v be_v subject_a to_o censure_v himself_o p._n 145._o and_o that_o shall_v do_v nothing_o of_o weight_n without_o the_o presbytery_n consent_n p._n 145._o and_o as_o be_v still_o bind_v to_o the_o work_n of_o a_o presbyter_n office_n p._n 146._o and_o that_o a_o orthodox_n church_n that_o have_v no_o bishop_n or_o moderator_n have_v but_o a_o certain_a oeconomical_a defect_n but_o be_v still_o a_o true_a church_n and_o have_v the_o power_n that_o other_o church_n have_v that_o have_v bishop_n p._n 158._o and_o that_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la presbyter_n have_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v as_o well_o as_o of_o preach_v and_o baptise_v though_o they_o must_v use_v it_o under_o the_o bishop_n inspection_n in_o those_o place_n that_o have_v bishop_n page_z 164._o and_o he_o be_v more_o full_a for_o the_o power_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v and_o the_o validity_n of_o it_o than_o any_o man_n that_o i_o now_o remember_v 12._o the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o bohemian_a government_n of_o the_o waldensian_a church_n write_v by_o lascitius_fw-la and_o commenius_n contain_v that_o very_a form_n of_o government_n which_o i_o think_v the_o sound_a of_o any_o that_o i_o have_v yet_o see_v 13._o the_o learned_a and_o judicious_a grotius_n before_o he_o turn_v to_o cassander_n grotius_n and_o erasmus_n temperament_n in_o religion_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr imper._n sum_fw-la pot_n circa_fw-la sacra_fw-la in_o almost_o all_o thing_n speak_v the_o same_o which_o i_o approve_v and_o plead_v for_o though_o he_o be_v for_o some_o episcopacy_n 1._o as_o to_o the_o pastoral_n power_n itself_o in_o whosoever_o he_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v but_o nuntiative_a declarative_a suasory_n and_o per_fw-la consensum_fw-la and_o not_o any_o imperium_fw-la like_o the_o power_n of_o a_o physician_n a_o counsellor_n and_o a_o ambassador_n chap._n 4._o but_o then_o by_o imperium_fw-la he_o mean_v that_o which_o be_v coactive_a by_o the_o sword_n and_o he_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o the_o ministry_n by_o the_o word_n upon_o consenter_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n so_o that_o they_o sin_n against_o god_n who_o do_v reject_v it_o and_o if_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v meddle_v with_o no_o other_o power_n we_o shall_v the_o soon_o be_v agree_v for_o my_o part_n i_o take_v the_o very_a power_n of_o the_o key_n to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o power_n of_o apply_v god_n word_n to_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o penitent_a and_o impenitent_a and_o the_o church_n and_o a_o power_n of_o judge_v who_o be_v fit_a or_o unfit_a for_o church-communion_n according_a to_o god_n word_n which_o judgement_n we_o can_v no_o otherwise_o execute_v but_o by_o the_o same_o word_n and_o by_o forbear_v or_o exercise_v our_o own_o ministerial_a action_n to_o the_o person_n as_o a_o physician_n may_v refuse_v to_o medicate_v the_o unruly_a in_o chap._n 6._o he_o speak_v just_o of_o the_o prince_n power_n as_o in_o the_o former_a and_o so_o he_o do_v chap._n 7._o of_o the_o use_n and_o power_n of_o synod_n or_o council_n chap._n 8._o he_o well_o vindicate_v the_o magistrate_n and_o deny_v to_o the_o church_n or_o bishop_n the_o legislative_a power_n circa_fw-la sacra_fw-la and_o show_v that_o canon_n be_v not_o proper_a law_n chap._n 9_o he_o show_v the_o jurisdiction_n proper_o so_o call_v belong_v to_o the_o magistrate_n and_o not_o to_o the_o pastor_n as_o such_o though_o of_o old_a they_o may_v be_v also_o magistrate_n he_o show_v that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n be_v call_v jurisdiction_n but_o by_o the_o same_o figure_n by_o which_o preach_v be_v call_v legislation_n which_o be_v true_a as_o to_o the_o declaration_n who_o be_v bind_v or_o loose_v in_o foro_fw-la caeli_fw-la but_o pastor_n more_o proper_o judge_v who_o be_v to_o be_v take_v into_o church-communion_n or_o exclude_v the_o prescript_n of_o penance_n he_o say_v be_v no_o jurisdiction_n but_o as_o the_o council_n of_o a_o physician_n or_o lawyer_n or_o philosopher_n that_o the_o deny_v of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o proper_o jurisdiction_n he_o thus_o excellent_o explain_v p._n 229._o as_o he_o that_o baptize_v or_o as_o the_o old_a custom_n be_v put_v the_o eucharist_n into_o one_o mouth_n or_o hand_n do_v exercise_v a_o act_n of_o ministry_n and_o not_o of_o jurisdiction_n so_o also_o he_o that_o abstain_v from_o the_o same_o act_n for_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o visible_a sign_n and_o of_o the_o audible_a be_v the_o same_o by_o what_o right_o therefore_o a_o pastor_n denounce_v by-word_n to_o one_o that_o be_v manifest_o flagitious_a that_o he_o be_v a_o utter_a alien_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o the_o same_o right_n also_o he_o do_v not_o baptise_v he_o because_o it_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o if_o he_o be_v baptise_a give_v he_o not_o the_o eucharist_n as_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o communion_n with_o christ_n for_o the_o sign_n be_v not_o to_o be_v give_v to_o he_o that_o the_o thing_n signify_v do_v not_o agree_v to_o nor_o be_v pearl_n to_o be_v give_v to_o swine_n but_o as_o the_o deacon_n be_v wont_a to_o cry_v in_o the_o church_n holy_a thing_n be_v for_o the_o holy_a yea_o it_o be_v not_o only_o against_o truth_n but_o against_o charity_n to_o make_v he_o partaksr_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n who_o discern_v not_o the_o lord_n body_n but_o eat_v and_o drink_v judgement_n to_o himself_o in_o these_o thing_n while_o the_o pastor_n do_v only_o suspend_v his_o own_o act_n and_o do_v concord_n not_o exercise_v any_o dominion_n over_o the_o act_n of_o other_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o this_o belong_v to_o the_o use_n of_o liberty_n and_o not_o to_o the_o exercise_n of_o jurisdiction_n such_o like_a be_v the_o case_n of_o a_o physician_n refuse_v to_o give_v a_o hydropic_a water_n when_o he_o desire_v it_o or_o in_o a_o grave_a person_n who_o resuse_v to_o salute_v a_o profligate_n fellow_n and_o in_o those_o that_o avoid_v the_o company_n of_o the_o leprous_a only_o it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o this_o avoidance_n be_v by_o a_o society_n govern_v therein_o by_o a_o officer_n of_o divine_a institution_n next_o he_o proceed_v to_o the_o church_n duty_n and_o show_v 1._o that_o as_o cyprian_n say_v the_o laity_n that_o be_v obedient_a to_o god_n command_n aught_o to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o a_o sinful_a pastor_n or_o prelate_n that_o be_v that_o be_v gross_o bad_a 2._o that_o they_o ought_v to_o avoid_v familiarity_n with_o scandalous_a christian_n as_o a_o scholar_n may_v forsake_v a_o bad_a teacher_n and_o as_o a_o honest_a man_n may_v leave_v the_o friendship_n of_o the_o flagitious_a as_o for_o the_o name_n of_o deposition_n and_o excommunication_n he_o say_v that_o we_o must_v interpret_v the_o name_n by_o the_o thing_n and_o not_o the_o thing_n by_o the_o name_n and_o that_o the_o church_n depose_v a_o pastor_n when_o
shall_v there_o tell_v he_o who_o to_o baptise_v where_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n and_o the_o power_n of_o baptise_v be_v the_o first_o and_o great_a key_n of_o the_o church_n even_o the_o key_n of_o admission_n and_o they_o that_o do_v among_o we_o deny_v a_o presbyter_n the_o power_n of_o judge_v who_o to_o baptise_v and_o give_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o do_v not_o give_v it_o to_o the_o bishop_n who_o know_v not_o of_o the_o person_n but_o the_o directive_n part_n they_o commit_v to_o a_o convocation_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o the_o judicial_a partly_o to_o the_o priest_n and_o partly_o to_o a_o lay-chancellor_n x._o epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 75._o say_v the_o apostle_n do_v not_o set_v all_o in_o full_a order_n at_o once_o and_o at_o first_o there_o be_v need_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n by_o who_o both_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n may_v be_v administer_v therefore_o where_o no_o man_n be_v find_v worthy_a of_o episcopacy_n in_o that_o place_n no_o bishop_n be_v set_v by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o think_v that_o for_o some_o time_n some_o church_n be_v govern_v without_o bishop_n and_o if_o so_o it_o there_o belong_v to_o the_o presbyter_n office_n to_o govern_v whereto_o we_o may_v add_v the_o opinion_n of_o many_o episcopal_a man_n who_o think_v that_o during_o the_o apostle_n time_n they_o be_v the_o only_a bishop_n in_o most_o church_n themselves_o and_o if_o so_o then_o in_o their_o long_a and_o frequent_a absence_n the_o presbyter_n must_v be_v the_o governor_n xi_o that_o many_o council_n have_v have_v presbyter_n yea_o many_o of_o they_o be_v past_a doubt_n look_v but_o in_o the_o council_n subscription_n and_o you_o will_v see_v it_o a_o synod_n of_o some_o bishop_n and_o more_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n gather_v at_o rome_n decree_v the_o excommunication_n of_o novatianus_n and_o his_o adherent_n euseb_n lib._n 6._o c._n 43._o noetus_n be_v convent_v judge_v expel_v by_o the_o session_n of_o presbyter_n epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 47._o c._n 1._o see_v a_o great_a number_n of_o instance_n of_o council_n hold_v by_o bishop_n with_o their_o presbyter_n in_o blondel_n de_fw-fr episc_n sect_n 3._o p._n 202._o yea_o one_o be_v hold_v at_o rome_n praesidentibus_fw-la cum_fw-la joanne_n 12_o presbyteris_fw-la an._n 964._o vid._n blond_n p._n 203_o 206_o 207._o yea_o they_o have_v place_n and_o vote_n in_o general_a council_n not_o only_o ut_fw-la aliorum_fw-la procuratores_fw-la as_o victor_n and_o vincentius_n in_o nic._n 1._o but_o as_o the_o pastor_n of_o their_o church_n and_o in_o their_o proper_a right_n i_o need_v not_o urge_v selden_n arabic_a catalogue_n in_o eutych_n alex._n where_o there_o be_v two_o person_n for_o divers_a particular_a place_n or_o zonaras_n who_o say_v there_o be_v priest_n deacon_n and_o monk_n nor_o athanasius_n a_o deacon_n presence_n evenof_n late_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n xii_o the_o foresay_a canon_n of_o carthage_n which_o be_v so_o full_a be_v insert_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o egbert_n archbishop_n of_o york_n as_o bishop_n usher_z and_o other_o have_v observe_v xxiii_o hierom_n communi_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la concilio_n ecclesiae_fw-la gubernabantur_fw-la second_v by_o chrysostome_n and_o other_o father_n be_v a_o trite_a but_o evident_a testimony_n fourteen_o that_o presbyter_n have_v the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n see_v full_o prove_v by_o calderwood_n altar_n damasc_n p._n 273._o xv._n basil_n anaphora_fw-la bibl._n pat._n tom._n 6._o p._n 22._o make_v every_o church_n to_o have_v archpresbyter_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n make_v the_o bishop_n to_o be_v but_o the_o archpresbyter_n chap._n fourteen_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o great_a and_o learnede_a prelatist_n 1._o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v public_o notify_v her_o judgement_n that_o church_n government_n discipline_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n alien_n from_o or_o above_o the_o order_n of_o the_o presbyter_n but_o belong_v to_o their_o office_n 1._o in_o that_o they_o allow_v presbyter_n to_o be_v member_n of_o convocation_n and_o that_o as_o choose_v by_o the_o presbyter_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o low_a house_n of_o convocation_n be_v but_o adviser_n to_o the_o upper_a i_o answer_v all_z together_o have_v but_o a_o advise_v power_n to_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n but_o in_o that_o sort_n of_o power_n the_o low_a house_n have_v its_o part_n as_o experience_n show_v 2._o there_o be_v many_o exempt_a jurisdiction_n in_o england_n as_o the_o king_n chapel_n the_o deanery_n of_o windsor_n and_o wolverhampton_n bridgenorth_n where_o six_o parish_n be_v govern_v by_o a_o court_n hold_v by_o a_o presbyter_n and_o many_o more_o which_o show_v that_o it_o be_v consistent_a with_o the_o presbyter_n office_n 3._o the_o archdeacon_n who_o be_v no_o bishop_n exercise_v some_o government_n and_o so_o do_v their_o official_o under_o they_o the_o objection_n from_o deputation_n be_v answer_v 4._o the_o surrogate_v of_o the_o bishop_n whether_o vicar_n general_n principal_a official_a or_o commissary_n be_v allow_v a_o certain_a part_n of_o government_n 5._o they_o that_o give_v lay-chancellor_n the_o power_n of_o judicial_a excommunication_n and_o absolution_n can_v think_v a_o presbyter_n uncapable_a of_o it_o 6._o a_o presbyter_n proforma_fw-la oft_o pass_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n and_o absolution_n in_o the_o chancellor_n court_n when_o he_o have_v judge_v it_o 7._o a_o presbyter_n in_o the_o church_n must_v publish_v that_o excommunication_n and_o absolution_n 8._o by_o allow_v presbyter_n to_o baptize_v and_o to_o deliver_v the_o lord_n supper_n and_o to_o keep_v some_o back_n for_o that_o time_n and_o to_o admit_v they_o again_o if_o they_o open_o profess_v to_o repent_v and_o amend_v their_o naughty_a life_n and_o to_o absolve_v the_o sick_a they_o intimate_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n belong_v to_o they_o though_o they_o contradict_v themselves_o otherwise_o by_o deny_v it_o they_o 9_o and_o in_o ordination_n the_o presbyter_n be_v require_v to_o exercise_v discipline_n and_o the_o word_n of_o act._n 20._o 28._o be_v former_o use_v to_o they_o take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n or_o bishop_n to_o feed_v or_o rule_n the_o church_n of_o god_n whence_o bishop_n usher_n gather_v that_o the_o church_n sense_n be_v that_o the_o presbyter_n have_v a_o joint_a power_n with_o the_o bishop_n in_o church_n government_n and_o though_o late_o anno_fw-la 1662._o this_o be_v alter_v and_o those_o word_n leave_v out_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o any_o such_o new_a change_n that_o can_v disprove_v this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o that_o make_v the_o book_n of_o ordination_n and_o that_o use_v it_o ii_o archbishop_n cranmer_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o commissioner_n appoint_v by_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o for_o the_o reformation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n decree_v the_o administer_a discipline_n in_o every_o parish_n by_o the_o minister_n and_o certain_a elder_n labour_v and_o intend_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o bring_v in_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n vid._n reform_v leg._n eccles_n do_fw-mi de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la officiis_n cap._n 10._o and_o our_o liturgy_n wish_v this_o godly_a discipline_n restore_v and_o substitute_v the_o curse_n till_o it_o can_v be_v do_v and_o the_o same_o cranmer_n be_v the_o first_o of_o 46_o who_o in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o affirm_v in_o a_o book_n call_v the_o bishop_n book_n to_o be_v see_v in_o fox_n martyrology_n that_o the_o difference_n of_o bishop_n be_v a_o device_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o not_o mention_v in_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o cranmer_n with_o other_o in_o this_o point_n his_o own_o paper_n publish_v by_o dr._n stillingfleet_n irenic_n p._n 390_o 391_o etc._n etc._n be_v so_o full_a a_o proof_n that_o no_o more_o be_v needful_a iii_o dr._n richard_n cousin_n in_o his_o table_n show_v how_o church_n discipline_n be_v partly_o exercise_v by_o presbyter_n and_o by_o the_o king_n commission_n may_v be_v much_o more_o and_o it_o be_v not_o alien_n to_o their_o office_n iv._o hooker_n eccles_n pol._n lib._n 5._o plead_v against_o the_o divine_a settlement_n of_o one_o form_n of_o government_n and_o lib._n 7._o sect._n 7._o p._n 17_o 18._o he_o show_v at_o large_a that_o the_o bishop_n with_o their_o presbyter_n as_o a_o confess_v govern_v the_o church_n and_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a truth_n that_o the_o church_n cathedral_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o they_o be_v as_o glass_n wherein_o the_o face_n and_o very_a countenance_n of_o apostolical_a antiquity_n remain_v yet_o to_o be_v see_v notwithstanding_o the_o alteration_n which_o tract_n of_o time_n and_o course_n of_o the_o world_n have_v
we_o differ_v he_o indeed_o say_v much_o to_o little_a purpose_n and_o final_o give_v away_o his_o cause_n or_o as_o he_o merry_o tell_v his_o adversary_n pag._n 62._o l._n 3._o 6._o 47._o he_o use_v it_o as_o sir_n christopher_n blunt_n head_n be_v use_v after_o his_o apprension_n first_o heal_v and_o then_o cut_v off_o for_o 1._o in_o his_o lib._n 3._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n he_o not_o only_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v in_o presbyter_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n have_v but_o a_o superiority_n of_o power_n therein_o but_o be_v angry_a with_o his_o adversary_n for_o suppose_v the_o contrary_a say_v ch_n 3._o p._n 68_o but_o where_o good_a sir_n do_v i_o say_v they_o must_v have_v the_o sole_a power_n in_o ordination_n which_o you_o have_v so_o oft_o object_v and_o now_o again_o repeat_v make_v you_o no_o conscience_n of_o publish_v untruth_n can_v bishop_n be_v superior_a to_o other_o minister_n in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o i_o maintain_v unless_o they_o have_v the_o sole_a power_n so_o p._n 64_o etc._n etc._n therefore_o he_o grant_v that_o extraordinary_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n presbyter_n may_v ordain_v that_o be_v without_o a_o bishop_n page_v 69._o and_o page_n 108._o he_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o the_o validity_n of_o their_o ordination_n because_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o baptise_a and_o reconciliation_n of_o penitent_n be_v reserve_v to_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o ordination_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v do_v by_o presbyter_n ●_o and_o that_o the_o papist_n themselves_o grant_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v license_v a_o presbyter_n to_o ordain_v presbyter_n if_o therefore_o say_v he_o by_o the_o pope_n licence_n a_o presbyter_n may_v ordain_v presbyter_n much_o better_a may_v a_o company_n of_o presbyter_n to_o who_o in_o the_o want_n of_o a_o bishop_n the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n be_v divolve_v be_v authorize_v thereto_o by_o necessity_n and_o if_o all_o this_o be_v so_o no_o doubt_n but_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v in_o presbyter_n as_o such_o though_o they_o be_v not_o to_o exercise_v it_o alone_o nor_o without_o or_o against_o the_o bishop_n and_o so_o former_o they_o be_v not_o to_o preach_v or_o baptise_v nor_o congregate_v the_o church_n without_o he_o for_o why_o can_v a_o layman_n ordain_v with_o the_o bishop_n but_o because_o he_o have_v no_o such_o authority_n and_o cap._n 5._o as_o to_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n he_o say_v the_o same_o p._n 110._o 111._o i_o deny_v not_o presbyter_n which_o have_v charge_n of_o soul_n to_o have_v jurisdiction_n both_o several_o in_o their_o parish_n and_o joint_o in_o provincial_a synod_n and_o i_o have_v confess_v before_o that_o presbyter_n have_v with_o and_o under_o the_o bishop_n exercise_v some_o jurisdiction_n i_o grant_v that_o godly_a bishop_n before_o they_o have_v the_o countenance_n and_o assistance_n of_o christian_a magistracy_n magistrate_n and_o direction_n of_o christian_a law_n use_v in_o all_o matter_n of_o moment_n to_o consult_v with_o their_o clergy_n this_o be_v practise_v by_o cyprian_a ambrose_n also_o in_o 1_o tim._n 5._o 1._o teach_v that_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o nothing_o be_v do_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o presbyter_n which_o therefore_o by_o ignatius_n be_v call_v the_o counsellor_n and_o coassessors_a of_o the_o bishop_n which_o course_n if_o it_o be_v use_v still_o as_o it_o will_v ease_v the_o bishop_n burden_n very_o much_o so_o will_v it_o nothing_o detract_v from_o their_o superiority_n in_o govern_v and_o page_n 115._o the_o thing_n which_o i_o be_v to_o prove_v if_o it_o have_v be_v needful_a be_v that_o whereas_o presbyter_n do_v govern_v each_o one_o the_o people_n of_o a_o parish_n and_o that_o private_o judgement_n the_o bishop_n govern_v the_o people_n of_o the_o whole_a diocese_n and_o that_o public_o so_o that_o both_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n belong_v to_o the_o presbyter_n office_n though_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o they_o must_v be_v govern_v themselves_o be_v not_o this_o the_o very_a sum_n of_o archbishop_n usher_n model_n of_o primitive_a episcopacy_n which_o we_o offer_v his_o majesty_n and_o the_o bishop_n at_o first_o for_o concord_n and_o the_o bishop_n will_v not_o once_o take_v it_o into_o their_o consideration_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o vouchsafe_v to_o talk_v of_o it_o or_o bring_v it_o under_o any_o deliberation_n when_o alas_o we_o poor_a undertrodden_a person_n not_o only_o desire_v to_o be_v low_o ourselves_o but_o yield_v to_o submit_v to_o all_o their_o height_n their_o lordship_n parliament_n dignity_n grandeur_n and_o to_o let_v they_o alone_o with_o their_o real_a sole_a ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o we_o poor_a presbyter_n and_o to_o have_v take_v as_o much_o care_n of_o the_o people_n as_o they_o will_v so_o we_o can_v but_o have_v obtain_v any_o tolerable_a degree_n of_o government_n to_o be_v settle_v in_o each_o particular_a church_n either_o in_o all_o the_o presbyter_n or_o in_o one_o bishop_n and_o not_o have_v have_v all_o the_o particular_a church_n deprive_v of_o bishop_n and_o all_o the_o pastoral_a jurisdiction_n but_o our_o great_a controversy_n be_v handle_v by_o bishop_n downame_n in_o his_o second_o book_n wherein_o he_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o bishop_n church_n or_o rather_o charge_n be_v not_o a_o parish_n but_o a_o diocese_n and_o first_o page_z 4._o he_o give_v we_o a_o scheme_n of_o the_o scripture_n acception_n of_o the_o word_n church_n as_o preparatory_a to_o his_o design_n in_o which_o there_o be_v many_o text_n cite_v not_o only_o without_o any_o show_n of_o proof_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o what_o he_o affirm_v they_o to_o speak_v but_o contrary_a to_o the_o plain_a scope_n of_o the_o place_n and_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o word_n church_n be_v use_v in_o scripture_n for_o the_o church_n militant_a congregat_v in_o a_o universal_a or_o ecumenical_a synod_n and_o offer_v we_o not_o one_o text_n for_o instance_n which_o he_o do_v though_o injurious_o for_o all_o the_o rest_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o that_o so_o speak_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o word_n be_v use_v particular_o to_o signify_v the_o church_n of_o a_o nation_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n but_o can_v name_v no_o such_o place_n as_o to_o any_o church_n since_o christ_n but_o only_o the_o jewish_a church_n act_v 7._o 38._o and_o he_o say_v it_o be_v use_v to_o signify_v particular_o and_o definite_o the_o church_n of_o a_o nation_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o strange_a kind_n of_o allegation_n the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o nation_n therefore_o it_o use_v the_o word_n for_o the_o church_n of_o a_o nation_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n be_v one_o church_n and_o many_o all_o one_o with_o he_o will_v he_o have_v applaud_v that_o man_n that_o will_v have_v say_v that_o such_o a_o author_n use_v the_o word_n college_n for_o the_o college_n of_o a_o university_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n because_o he_o name_v the_o college_n in_o a_o university_n and_o this_o to_o prove_v that_o a_o university_n be_v one_o college_n have_v it_o not_o be_v better_o say_v the_o new_a testament_n never_o use_v the_o word_n church_n for_o all_o the_o church_n in_o one_o nation_n since_o christ_n definite_o but_o ever_o call_v they_o plural_o church_n therefore_o to_o call_v they_o all_o one_o national_a church_n be_v not_o to_o imitate_v the_o scripture_n his_o first_o instance_n be_v rom._n 6._o 4._o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n a_o sad_a proof_n of_o a_o national_a church_n what_o nation_n be_v it_o that_o the_o word_n gentiles_n signify_v no_o doubt_v the_o gentile_a church_n be_v in_o gentile_a nation_n but_o that_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o christian_n in_o any_o nation_n be_v ever_o call_v in_o scripture_n since_o the_o jew_n nation_n one_o church_n but_o church_n his_o next_o instance_n be_v 1_o cor._n 16._o 1._o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v all_o such_o v_o 19_o 2_o cor._n 8._o 1._o gal._n 1._o 2._o 22._o the_o church_n of_o asia_n macedonia_n judaea_n but_o i_o hope_v he_o intend_v no_o more_o than_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o christian_n of_o several_a nation_n be_v never_o call_v a_o church_n but_o church_n as_o have_v any_o sort_n of_o union_n than_o national_a he_o give_v many_o instance_n when_o the_o word_n church_n be_v use_v definite_o to_o signify_v the_o church_n of_o a_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v but_o to_o prove_v it_o use_v to_o signify_v several_a church_n in_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v but_o one_o only_a two_o text_n he_o allege_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n church_n be_v use_v
hammond_n think_v they_o prove_v that_o rome_n and_o other_o great_a city_n than_o have_v more_o bishop_n than_o one_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o people_n diversity_n in_o language_n etc._n etc._n as_o peter_n of_o the_o circumcision_n and_o paul_n of_o the_o uncircumcision_n 4._o eusebius_n mention_v not_o this_o as_o a_o certainty_n but_o with_o a_o its_o say_v which_o be_v the_o usual_a note_n of_o his_o uncertain_a report_n of_o which_o he_o have_v not_o a_o few_o as_o be_v common_o confess_v 5._o dr._n hammond_n be_v so_o far_o from_o believe_v this_o that_o many_o parish_n be_v commit_v so_o early_o to_o presbyter_n under_o one_o bishop_n that_o he_o think_v there_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o any_o such_o presbyter_n be_v in_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n time_n and_o though_o we_o confess_v that_o alexandria_n and_o rome_n have_v divers_a church_n in_o they_o long_o before_o other_o place_n there_o be_v no_o proof_n or_o probability_n that_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o l._n 3._o c._n 4._o eusebius_n express_o say_v but_o how_o many_o and_o what_o sincere_a follower_n have_v govern_v the_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n it_o can_v be_v affirm_v but_o so_o far_o as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n and_o c._n 19_o he_o mention_v in_o the_o singular_a number_n the_o church_n not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n and_o l._n 4._o c._n 11._o he_o say_v celadion_n succeed_v mark_n in_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n but_o he_o say_v l._n 5._o c._n 9_o that_o julianus_n be_v choose_v bishop_n over_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o c._n 22._o demetrius_n come_v in_o his_o place_n and_o l._n 6._o c._n 1._o demetrius_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o oversight_n of_o the_o congregation_n there_o and_o c._n 35._o dionysius_n receive_v the_o bishopric_n of_o rule_v the_o church_n in_o or_o about_o alexandria_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr 1._o so_o long_o after_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o alexandria_n have_v more_o assembly_n than_o one_o 2._o yet_o it_o be_v most_o likely_a that_o by_o the_o church_n in_o and_o about_o alexandria_n eusebius_n mean_v the_o church_n under_o the_o archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n which_o have_v bishop_n of_o their_o own_o 3._o before_o they_o have_v a_o temple_n there_o may_v be_v several_a lesser_a meeting_n in_o the_o city_n which_o be_v but_o as_o our_o chapel_n or_o the_o independent_n meet_v in_o several_a house_n at_o once_o when_o yet_o the_o church_n be_v but_o one_o because_o they_o be_v associate_v for_o personal_a communion_n 4._o when_o the_o parish_n be_v divide_v to_o several_a presbyter_n yet_o then_o each_o presbyter_n have_v the_o true_a episcopal_a office_n as_o to_o the_o people_n though_o not_o the_o name_n and_o though_o they_o be_v under_o a_o superior_a bishop_n that_o be_v they_o have_v the_o whole_a office_n of_o a_o presbyter_n or_o pastor_n to_o govern_v the_o people_n as_o well_o as_o teach_v they_o and_o worship_n with_o they_o and_o so_o there_o be_v then_o no_o parish_n like_o we_o which_o be_v but_o part_n of_o a_o diocesan_n church_n and_o no_o church_n of_o itself_o as_o the_o bishop_n form_v it_o because_o it_o have_v but_o a_o half_a pastor_n 5._o and_o be_v not_o the_o case_n of_o all_o other_o church_n in_o the_o world_n that_o to_o this_o time_n be_v but_o single_a church_n more_o considerable_a than_o the_o case_n of_o rome_n and_o alexandria_n which_o differ_v from_o all_o the_o rest_n obj._n but_o all_o the_o rest_n do_v the_o same_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v people_n enough_o to_o make_v many_o church_n ans_fw-fr 1._o i_o have_v tell_v you_o grotius_n and_o dr._n hammond_n think_v that_o there_o be_v more_o bishop_n than_o one_o in_o a_o city_n for_o some_o time_n 2._o this_o multiplication_n be_v not_o till_o long_o after_o in_o the_o three_o century_n and_o with_o most_o in_o the_o four_o when_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o the_o church_n fall_v into_o the_o imperial_a form_n and_o when_o they_o do_v so_o the_o roman_a primacy_n arise_v with_o the_o rest_n 3._o yet_o even_o then_o the_o presbyter_n be_v episcopi_fw-la gregis_fw-la and_o have_v the_o true_a full_a pastoral_a power_n as_o to_o their_o flock_n as_o aforesaid_a so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n that_o yet_o depose_v the_o presbyter_n as_o now_o page_n 125._o he_o say_v neither_o be_v this_o a_o thing_n peculiar_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n but_o common_a to_o other_o ignatius_n be_v bishop_n not_o only_o of_o antioch_n but_o of_o syria_n irenaeus_n the_o bishop_n of_o lion_n be_v bishop_n of_o the_o church_n in_o france_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr 1._o this_o open_v the_o former_a case_n these_o be_v not_o diocesanes_n depose_v all_o the_o episcopos_fw-la gregis_fw-la and_o become_v sole_a bishop_n but_o archbishop_n that_o have_v under_o they_o bishop_n in_o each_o particular_a church_n yet_o note_n that_o it_o be_v the_o french_a synod_n of_o bishop_n which_o euseb_n ib._n l._n 5._o c._n 23._o iren._n be_v say_v to_o oversee_v as_o it_o be_v say_v ibid._n that_o palmas_n do_v so_o among_o the_o bishop_n of_o pontus_n in_o their_o synod_n and_o that_o victor_n be_v precedent_n in_o the_o bishop_n synod_n at_o rome_n and_o theophilus_n of_o caesarea_n and_o narcissus_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o palestine_n synod_n which_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o case_n it_o be_v further_a say_v that_o optatus_n say_v that_o in_o rome_n be_v 40_o church_n and_o that_o theodoret_n have_v 800._o ans_fw-fr 1._o it_o be_v grant_v that_o in_o optatus_n day_n rome_n have_v 40_o which_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o case_n in_o hand_n 2._o in_o those_o 40_o so_o late_o there_o be_v no_o half_a presbyter_n but_o as_o this_o doctor_n confess_v they_o have_v not_o only_o a_o joint_a power_n in_o govern_v the_o flock_n but_o in_o ordination_n too_o 3._o i_o confess_v theodoret_n case_n seem_v strange_a and_o though_o of_o late_a date_n be_v so_o incredible_a as_o contrary_a to_o the_o case_n of_o other_o church_n that_o i_o do_v the_o rather_o for_o that_o clause_n believe_v that_o epistle_n to_o leo_n to_o be_v a_o forgery_n or_o corrupt_v at_o least_o and_o beside_o this_o reason_n i_o have_v these_o also_o for_o it_o 1._o because_o he_o himself_o say_v that_o cyrus_n where_o he_o be_v bishop_n be_v but_o two_o day_n journey_n from_o antioch_n hist_o sanct._n patr._n de_fw-fr juliano_n and_o he_o that_o know_v how_o great_a the_o diocese_n of_o antioch_n be_v will_v not_o easy_o believe_v that_o a_o town_n within_o two_o day_n journey_n to_o monk_n that_o go_v on_o foot_n be_v like_a to_o have_v eight_o hundred_o church_n in_o it_o at_o that_o time_n 2._o and_o we_o know_v out_o of_o who_o shop_n theodoret_n epistle_n come_v nicephorus_n say_v he_o read_v above_o 500_o of_o his_o epistle_n baronius_n say_v there_o be_v a_o book_n in_o the_o vatican_n contain_v 150_o of_o they_o metius_n translate_v these_o into_o latin_a but_o say_v rivet_n crit._n sacr._n l._n 4._o c._n 21._o p._n 455._o the_o reader_n must_v remember_v that_o they_o have_v be_v keep_v all_o this_o while_n in_o the_o adversary_n cabinet_n and_o by_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o light_n and_o into_o latin_a so_o that_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n further_o than_o other_o history_n confirm_v they_o 3_o especial_o see_v leontius_n de_fw-fr sectis_fw-la say_v as_o baronius_n confess_v that_o heretic_n feign_v epistle_n in_o theodoret_n name_n and_o bellarmine_n de_fw-fr script_n eccl._n mention_v one_o that_o have_v his_o name_n in_o council_n ephes_n that_o neither_o theodoret_n nor_o any_o christian_a be_v to_o be_v charge_v with_o 4._o and_o that_o this_o one_o epistle_n to_o leo_n shall_v be_v cull_v out_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v alone_o print_v after_o theodoret_n work_n show_v the_o design_n and_o what_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o it_o 5._o and_o i_o shall_v anon_o cite_v much_o out_o of_o theodoret_n himself_o to_o show_v the_o improbability_n that_o diocese_n have_v then_o so_o many_o church_n and_o so_o much_o as_o a_o just_a confutation_n of_o bishop_n downame_n not_o as_o refer_v to_o other_o man_n with_o who_o he_o deal_v but_o to_o the_o cause_n which_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n and_o that_o i_o answer_v not_o the_o whole_a book_n be_v because_o i_o know_v of_o no_o more_o in_o it_o than_o what_o i_o have_v cull_v out_o which_o need_v a_o answer_n as_o to_o the_o cause_n which_o i_o defend_v of_o which_o i_o make_v the_o judicious_a reader_n judge_n 6._o bishop_n hall_n defence_n of_o episcopacy_n meddle_v so_o little_a with_o the_o hall_n point_n now_o in_o question_n that_o i_o have_v no_o need_n to_o say_v any_o thing_n to_o it_o more_o than_o be_v already_o say_v and_o he_o grant_v all_o that_o i_o desire_v 7._o
now_o to_o his_o argument_n 1._o paul_n plant_v paul_n only_o be_v their_o father_n what_o then_o ergo_fw-la paul_n only_o be_v their_o bishop_n i_o deny_v the_o consequence_n and_o may_v long_o wait_v for_o a_o syllable_n of_o proof_n contrary_o paul_n only_o be_v not_o their_o apostle_n ergo_fw-la paul_n only_o be_v not_o their_o bishop_n for_o every_o apostle_n you_o say_v have_v episcopal_a power_n include_v in_o the_o apostolical_a and_o none_o of_o they_o cease_v to_o have_v apostolical_a power_n wherever_o they_o come_v though_o they_o be_v many_o together_o as_o at_o jerusalem_n ergo_fw-la none_o of_o they_o cease_v to_o have_v episcopal_a power_n the_o conceit_n of_o conversion_n and_o paternity_n entitul_a to_o sole_a episcopacy_n i_o shall_v confute_v by_o itself_o anon_o 2._o but_o paul_n judge_v the_o incestuous_a person_n and_o speak_v of_o come_v with_o the_o rod._n and_o what_o follow_v ergo_fw-la none_o but_o paul_n may_v do_v the_o same_o in_o that_o diocese_n i_o deny_v the_o consequence_n any_o other_o apostle_n may_v do_v the_o same_o where_o be_v your_o proof_n and_o if_o all_o this_o be_v grant_v it_o be_v nothing_o against_o the_o cause_n that_o we_o maintain_v and_o next_o let_v we_o inquire_v whether_o this_o church_n have_v no_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n but_o paul_n as_o here_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o proof_n on_o their_o side_n so_o i_o prove_v the_o contrary_a 1._o because_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v elder_n or_o bishop_n in_o every_o church_n and_o city_n act_v 14._o 23._o tit._n 1._o 5._o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n have_v such_o 2._o if_o they_o have_v not_o presbyter_n or_o bishop_n they_o can_v hold_v no_o ordinary_a christian_a church-assembly_n for_o all_o god_n public_a worship_n e._n g._n they_o can_v not_o communicate_v in_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o layman_n may_v not_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o it_o nor_o the_o ordinary_a guide_n and_o teacher_n of_o a_o worship_a church_n but_o they_o do_v hold_v such_o ordinary_a assembly_n communicate_v in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o to_o say_v that_o they_o have_v only_a pastor_n that_o be_v itinerant_a in_o transitu_fw-la as_o they_o come_v one_o after_o another_o that_o way_n be_v to_o speak_v without_o book_n and_o against_o it_o and_o to_o make_v they_o differ_v from_o all_o other_o church_n without_o proof_n 3._o 1_o cor._n 14._o do_v plain_o end_v that_o controversy_n with_o 1_o cor._n 11._o when_o they_o have_v so_o many_o prophet_n and_o teacher_n and_o gift_a person_n in_o their_o assembly_n that_o paul_n be_v put_v to_o restrain_v and_o regulate_v their_o public_a exercise_n direct_v they_o to_o speak_v but_o one_o or_o two_o and_o the_o rest_n to_o judge_v and_o this_o rather_o by_o the_o way_n of_o edify_a plainness_n than_o by_o tongue_n etc._n etc._n and_o c._n 11._o they_o have_v enough_o to_o be_v the_o ordinary_a minister_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o cb_n 5._o they_o have_v instruction_n for_o church-discipline_n both_o as_o to_o the_o incestuous_a man_n and_o for_o all_o the_o scandalous_a for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o be_v chide_v for_o not_o use_v it_o before_o and_o who_o but_o the_o separatist_n do_v hold_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o discipline_n be_v in_o the_o people_n hand_n therefore_o most_o certain_o they_o have_v a_o clergy_n and_o if_o all_o this_o go_v not_o for_o proof_n against_o a_o bare_a affirmation_n of_o the_o contrary_a we_o can_v prove_v nothing_o 4._o and_o 1_o cor._n 4._o 15._o i_o scarce_o think_v that_o paul_n will_v have_v have_v occasion_n to_o say_v tho_o you_o have_v ten_o thousand_o instructer_n if_o they_o have_v not_o have_v qualify_v person_n enough_o to_o afford_v they_o one_o or_o two_o for_o presbyter_n cap._n 2._o prove_v no_o more_o of_o any_o one_o apostle_n fix_v episcopacy_n he_o come_v to_o their_o secondary_a bishop_n or_o apostle_n and_o whereas_o we_o judge_v that_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n and_o the_o apostle_n assistant_n be_v unfixed_a minister_n appropriate_v no_o church_n or_o diocese_n to_o themselves_o in_o point_n of_o power_n but_o plant_v settle_v and_o confirm_v church_n in_o a_o itinerant_a way_n and_o distribute_v their_o province_n only_o arbitrary_o and_o changeable_o and_o as_o the_o spirit_n guide_v they_o at_o the_o present_a time_n of_o their_o work_n and_o that_o bishop_n and_o elder_n be_v such_o pastor_n as_o these_o church-gatherers_a fix_v in_o a_o state_v relation_n to_o particular_a church_n so_o that_o a_o apostle_n be_v a_o bishop_n eminenter_fw-la but_o not_o formaliter_fw-la and_o that_o a_o bishop_n as_o such_o be_v no_o apostle_n in_o the_o eminent_a sense_n but_o be_v also_o a_o itinerant_a preacher_n limited_o because_o while_o he_o oversee_v his_o flock_n he_o be_v also_o to_o endeavour_v the_o conversion_n of_o other_o as_o far_o as_o his_o opportunity_n allow_v he_o i_o say_v this_o be_v our_o judgement_n this_o learned_a doctor_n suppose_v apostle_n as_o such_o to_o be_v bishop_n and_o the_o fix_a bishop_n as_o such_o to_o be_v second_o apostles_n and_o i_o so_o avoid_v contend_v about_o name_n even_o where_o it_o be_v of_o some_o importance_n to_o the_o matter_n that_o i_o will_v not_o waste_v my_o time_n upon_o it_o till_o it_o be_v necessary_a in_o §_o 1._o he_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o second_o apostle_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o jurisdiction_n and_o name_n with_o the_o first_o and_o either_o plant_v and_o rule_v church_n or_o rule_v such_o as_o other_o have_v plant_v answ_n 1._o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o apostle_n have_v indefinite_a itinerant_a assistant_n and_o definite_a fix_a bishop_n place_v by_o they_o as_o aforesaid_a but_o the_o indefinite_a and_o the_o definite_a must_v not_o be_v confound_v 2._o and_o be_v not_o luke_n mark_n timothy_n and_o other_o itinerant_a evangelist_n as_o such_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o such_o assistant_n or_o secondary_a apostle_n exclude_v they_o and_o you_o can_v prove_v none_o but_o the_o fix_a bishop_n but_o if_o they_o be_v why_o do_v you_o before_o deny_v evangelist_n dissert_n 3._o cap._n 6._o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o make_v they_o mere_a convert_v preacher_n below_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n and_o the_o same_o with_o deacon_n whereas_o paul_n ephes_n 4._o 11._o do_v place_v they_o before_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n but_o avoid_v the_o controversy_n de_fw-fr nomine_fw-la call_v they_o what_o you_o will_v we_o believe_v that_o these_o itinerant_a assistant_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v of_o that_o one_o sacred_a office_n common_o call_v the_o priesthood_n or_o ministry_n though_o not_o yet_o fix_v and_o that_o the_o assign_v they_o to_o particular_a church_n do_v not_o make_v they_o of_o a_o new_a order_n but_o only_o give_v they_o a_o new_a object_n and_o opportunity_n to_o exercise_v the_o power_n which_o they_o have_v before_o and_o that_o philip_n and_o other_o deacon_n be_v not_o evangelist_n mere_o as_o deacon_n which_o term_n denote_v a_o fix_a office_n in_o one_o church_n but_o by_o a_o further_a call_v and_o that_o you_o never_o do_v prove_v that_o ever_o the_o scripture_n know_v one_o presbyter_n that_o have_v not_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n as_o bishop_n have_v yea_o you_o confess_v yourself_o the_o contrary_n all_o therefore_o that_o follow_v in_o that_o chapter_n and_o your_o book_n of_o james_n the_o just_a and_o mark_v and_o other_o have_v episcopal_a power_n be_v nothing_o against_o we_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o put_v you_o to_o prove_v be_v that_o ever_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v such_o a_o officer_n as_o a_o presbyter_n that_o have_v not_o episcopal_a power_n and_o obligation_n too_o as_o to_o his_o flock_n that_o be_v the_o power_n of_o govern_v that_o church_n according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o i_o will_v learn_v if_o i_o can_v whether_o all_o the_o apostle_n which_o stay_v long_o at_o jerusalem_n while_o james_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v their_o bishop_n be_v not_o bishop_n also_o with_o he_o whether_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v apostle_n to_o the_o people_n there_o or_o whether_o they_o be_v apostle_n and_o not_o bishop_n and_o whether_o they_o lose_v any_o of_o their_o power_n by_o make_v james_n bishop_n and_o whether_o one_o church_n then_o have_v not_o many_o bishop_n at_o once_o and_o if_o they_o make_v james_n great_a than_o themselves_o whether_o according_a to_o your_o premonition_n they_o do_v not_o give_v a_o power_n or_o honour_n which_o they_o have_v not_o which_o you_o think_v unanswerable_a in_o our_o case_n cap._n 4._o come_v in_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n rev._n 1_o 2_o &_o 3._o of_o which_o though_o the_o matter_n be_v little_a to_o our_o cause_n i_o have_v say_v enough_o before_o why_o i_o prefer_v the_o exposition_n of_o ticonivi_fw-la which_o augustine_n seem_v to_o favour_n and_o i_o find_v nothing_o here_o to_o the_o
trial_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n cap._n 5._o §_o 5._o he_o now_o acknowledge_v that_o where_o many_o be_v at_o first_o convert_v not_o always_o the_o first_o but_o the_o fit_a be_v choose_v bishop_n and_o how_o prove_v you_o that_o he_o and_o his_o flock_n be_v no_o church_n the_o same_o he_o maintain_v §_o 11._o and_o after_o from_o the_o choice_n usual_o make_v by_o suffrage_n and_o other_o reason_n well_o confute_v the_o former_a conceit_n when_o he_o take_v it_o to_o be_v blondel_n but_o sure_o he_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v ecclesiae_fw-la nondum_fw-la nat●_n or_o future_a believer_n that_o choose_v bishop_n by_o suffrage_n but_o have_v so_o full_o in_o this_o chapter_n confute_v his_o former_a as_o blondel_n opinion_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o blondel_n be_v in_o this_o as_o easy_o reconcile_v to_o he_o as_o he_o to_o himself_o and_o mean_v no_o more_o but_z 1._o that_o the_o apostle_n use_v not_o to_o make_v bishop_n of_o the_o first_o convert_v simple_o but_o to_o choose_v they_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a grow_v and_o prove_v christian_n 2._o and_o that_o be_v so_o choose_v not_o he_o that_o be_v first_o baptise_a but_o he_o that_o be_v first_o ordain_v have_v the_o presidence_n in_o the_o con●essus_n of_o their_o presbyter_n which_o the_o dr._n may_v easy_o have_v see_v and_o spare_v his_o insult_a upon_o the_o contrary_a supposition_n but_o let_v it_o here_o again_o be_v note_v that_o §_o 9_o he_o express_o and_o confident_o assert_v all_o that_o i_o now_o desire_n viz._n that_o clemens_n do_v speak_v of_o that_o time_n of_o the_o church_n beginning_n in_o which_o there_o be_v not_o yet_o many_o believer_n and_o therefore_o without_o doubt_n neither_o presbyter_n institute_v if_o he_o mean_v no_o subject_a presbyter_n or_o if_o he_o mean_v not_o many_o in_o a_o church_n but_o one_o bishop_n i_o desire_v no_o more_o for_o than_o no_o bishop_n have_v more_o church_n assembly_n than_o one_o nor_o any_o half_n presbyter_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o clemens_n do_v not_o tell_v we_o what_o the_o apostle_n do_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o preach_a only_o but_o give_v we_o this_o as_o a_o account_n of_o all_o their_o course_n in_o settle_v office_n in_o the_o church_n where_o they_o come_v cap._n 6._o he_o confess_v that_o clemens_n mention_v but_o two_o order_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n and_o we_o will_v have_v no_o more_o and_o §_o 4._o be_v over_o angry_a with_o blundel_n for_o gather_v hence_o that_o he_o do_v not_o do_v as_o those_o that_o from_o the_o jewish_a elder_n or_o priest_n or_o the_o 70_o gather_v another_o order_n what_o be_v there_o in_o this_o collection_n that_o deserve_v the_o sharp_a word_n of_o that_o §_o cap._n 7._o whether_o clemens_n well_o cite_v isai_n 60._o 17._o we_o need_v not_o debate_v but_o if_o yet_o any_o think_v that_o the_o dr._n have_v not_o full_o grant_v we_o our_o cause_n let_v he_o take_v these_o addition_n §_o 7._o he_o well_o gather_v from_o clemens_n that_o this_o form_n of_o government_n found_v in_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n in_o each_o church_n be_v settle_v by_o man_n entrust_v by_o christ_n be_v no_o less_o to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n command_v than_o if_o christ_n himself_o have_v constitute_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n in_o every_o city_n let_v who_o dare_v then_o approve_v of_o the_o alteration_n by_o the_o introduction_n of_o another_o order_n of_o priest_n and_o §_o 8._o he_o note_v also_o out_o of_o clemens_n that_o the_o foresight_n of_o the_o contention_n that_o will_v be_v about_o episcopacy_n cause_v this_o establishment_n of_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n no_o doubt_n god_n foreknow_v both_o that_o the_o popular_a sort_n will_v oppose_v government_n and_o that_o the_o monarchical_a prelate_n will_v depose_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o church_n save_o themselves_o and_o the_o arch-prelate_n will_v depose_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o particular_a church_n and_o set_v up_o half_a priest_n in_o their_o stead_n and_o he_o do_v well_o not_o to_o pass_v the_o follow_a word_n in_o clemens_n though_o hard_o yet_o plain_o subvert_v the_o doctor_n opinion_n that_o from_o this_o same_o foresight_n the_o apostle_n constitute_v the_o foresay_a bishop_n and_o deacon_n in_o every_o church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n ac_fw-la descriptas_fw-la deinceps_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la officiorumque_fw-la vice_n reliquerunt_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o defunctorum_fw-la locum_fw-la alii_fw-la viri_fw-la probati_fw-la succedere_fw-la &_o illorum_fw-la munia_fw-la exequi_fw-la possent_fw-la as_o pat._n junius_n translate_v it_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can_v allow_v no_o such_o doubt_n as_o shall_v make_v this_o much_o of_o the_o sense_n to_o be_v questionable_a 1._o that_o upon_o the_o foresight_n of_o the_o contention_n about_o episcopacy_n the_o apostle_n make_v by_o the_o spirit_n a_o establish_a description_n of_o the_o order_n and_o office_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n not_o only_o in_o their_o time_n but_o afterward_o 2._o and_o that_o the_o approve_a man_n that_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v ordain_v shall_v succeed_v in_o those_o same_o order_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v establish_v and_o describe_v even_o to_o the_o same_o work_n or_o office_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 3._o that_o the_o apostle_n thus_o settle_v or_o describe_v no_o mongrel_n or_o half_a priest_n but_o only_a bishop_n and_o deacon_n nor_o any_o church_n that_o have_v not_o each_o a_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n 4._o therefore_o no_o such_o half_a priest_n shall_v be_v bring_v in_o but_o only_o such_o as_o the_o apostle_n institute_v or_o describe_v i_o can_v scarce_o speak_v my_o thought_n plain_o than_o by_o the_o doctor_n next_o word_n §_o 9_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o by_o the_o immediate_a impulse_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n bishop_n be_v constitute_v deacon_n only_o join_v to_o they_o in_o every_o church_n and_o so_o at_o corinth_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o city_n of_o achaia_n and_o that_o by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o same_o divine_a prophecy_n or_o revelation_n successor_n be_v assign_v to_o they_o after_o their_o departure_n not_o a_o new_a order_n invent_v christ_n thus_o consult_v and_o provide_v for_o the_o church_n peace_n etc._n etc._n and_o §_o 14._o he_o well_o grant_v 1._o that_o the_o form_n of_o church_n government_n be_v no_o where_o change_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o no_o middle_a order_n institute_v by_o they_o 2._o that_o through_o all_o their_o age_n and_o when_o they_o be_v consummate_v in_o the_o middle_n under_o their_o disciple_n the_o government_n of_o every_o church_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n in_o common_a but_o whereas_o §_o 13_o etc._n etc._n he_o lay_v this_o as_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o cause_n 1._o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n at_o corinth_n alone_o but_o of_o all_o achaia_n that_o clemens_n write_v to_o under_o this_o name_n 2._o and_o that_o there_o be_v not_o many_o bishop_n in_o one_o church_n but_o one_o to_o each_o of_o these_o particular_a church_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n 1._o to_o try_v impartial_o whether_o in_o all_o the_o drs._n book_n there_o be_v one_o word_n of_o cogent_a evidence_n to_o prove_v what_o he_o say_v yea_o or_o to_o make_v it_o credible_a or_o likely_a 2._o to_o consider_v these_o reason_n follow_v for_o the_o contrary_n 1._o as_o be_v say_v whether_o scripture_n custom_n of_o speech_n will_v allow_v we_o to_o call_v all_o the_o church_n of_o a_o region_n a_o church_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n show_v one_o text_n for_o it_o if_o you_o can_v 2._o whether_o any_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a use_n of_o speech_n will_v allow_v we_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o achaia_n dwell_v at_o corinth_n as_o clemens_n speak_v p._n 1_o 3._o whether_o i_o have_v not_o prove_v from_o 1_o cor._n 14._o etc._n etc._n that_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n have_v more_o minister_n or_o clergy_n man_n or_o pastor_n in_o it_o than_o one_o in_o paul_n time_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o without_o so_o soon_o after_o 4._o whether_o it_o be_v credible_a that_o when_o it_o be_v but_o one_o or_o two_o person_n p._n 62._o by_o who_o or_o for_o who_o cause_n the_o presbyter_n be_v eject_v that_o it_o be_v like_o either_o this_o one_o or_o two_o be_v member_n of_o more_o particular_a church_n in_o achaia_n than_o one_o or_o two_o or_o that_o all_o the_o church_n of_o achaia_n will_v so_o far_o own_o one_o or_o two_o mutineer_n in_o a_o particular_a church_n as_o to_o cast_v out_o many_o of_o their_o minister_n for_o their_o sake_n 5._o yea_o when_o clemens_n whole_a scope_n intimate_v that_o this_o one_o or_o two_o do_v this_o because_o they_o aspire_v after_o power_n or_o preeminence_n themselves_o can_v they_o expect_v themselves_o to_o be_v make_v the_o ruler_n of_o more_o
and_o as_o his_o instrument_n that_o he_o do_v not_o in_o the_o distinct_a person_n of_o a_o presbyter_n he_o that_o pay_v money_n or_o deliver_v possession_n in_o his_o master_n name_n do_v it_o not_o in_o his_o own_o so_o that_o if_o real_o they_o mean_v as_o they_o say_v that_o quoad_fw-la personam_fw-la legalem_fw-la quamvis_fw-la non_fw-la naturalem_fw-la it_o be_v the_o bishop_n that_o do_v teach_v and_o officiate_v per_fw-la alios_fw-la than_o no_o presbyter_n be_v indeed_o endue_v with_o any_o power_n of_o teach_v officiate_a or_o rule_v in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o presbyter_n but_o only_o to_o be_v the_o servant_n and_o instrument_n of_o the_o diocesane_n 2._o no_o presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o judge_v who_o he_o shall_v baptise_v or_o who_o to_o refuse_v but_o be_v to_o baptise_v all_o without_o any_o exception_n that_o have_v godfather_n and_o godmother_n who_o will_v but_o say_v the_o word_n in_o the_o book_n the_o canon_n 78._o be_v no_o minister_n shall_v refuse_v or_o delay_v to_o christen_v any_o child_n according_a to_o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n that_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o church_n to_o he_o upon_o sunday_n or_o holiday_n to_o be_v christen_v else_o suspend_v three_o month_n from_o his_o ministry_n yea_o that_o be_v it_o that_o pay_v for_o all_o so_o can._n 79._o he_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v in_o house_n in_o case_n of_o danger_n yet_o can._n 29._o no_o parent_n shall_v be_v urge_v to_o be_v present_a nor_o be_v admit_v to_o answer_v as_o godfather_n for_o his_o own_o child_n now_o the_o liturgy_n require_v not_o any_o godfather_n to_o adopt_v the_o child_n and_o take_v it_o for_o his_o own_o nor_o do_v it_o allow_v we_o to_o refuse_v the_o child_n of_o turk_n jew_n or_o heathen_n and_o if_o these_o godfather_n be_v know_v atheist_n turk_n jew_n or_o heathen_n or_o the_o filthy_a adulterer_n or_o wicked_a person_n if_o they_o do_v ever_o in_o their_o life_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o will_v say_v as_o the_o book_n bid_v they_o the_o priest_n can_v refuse_v the_o child_n but_o if_o the_o godly_a parent_n can_v get_v none_o to_o be_v such_o godfather_n or_o godmother_n his_o child_n must_v not_o be_v baptise_a i_o tell_v the_o bishop_n myself_o that_o i_o have_v a_o notorious_a infidel_n boast_v that_o he_o will_v bring_v his_o child_n to_o be_v baptize_v and_o say_v the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n and_o see_v who_o dare_v refuse_v it_o and_o i_o be_v answer_v that_o if_o the_o child_n have_v godfather_n there_o be_v no_o scruple_n but_o i_o shall_v baptise_v he_o but_o when_o i_o ask_v what_o if_o these_o infidel_n profess_o such_o be_v the_o godfather_n and_o say_v beforehand_o i_o will_v say_v those_o word_n and_o refuse_v i_o if_o you_o dare_v they_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v that_o common_a reason_n shall_v regard_v now_o he_o that_o be_v but_o send_v to_o baptise_v those_o even_o all_o whosoever_o that_o other_o bid_v he_o baptize_v and_o have_v no_o more_o discern_v or_o judge_v power_n of_o the_o person_n capacity_n than_o a_o layman_n have_v be_v in_o this_o no_o presbyter_n but_o a_o prelate_n messenger_n or_o servant_n 3._o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o instruct_v admonish_v or_o reprove_v in_o secret_a or_o public_a or_o in_o their_o own_o house_n any_o one_o ignorant_a heretical_a infidel_n atheistical_a or_o scandalous_a wicked_a man_n that_o will_v but_o refuse_v to_o speak_v with_o they_o or_o to_o hear_v they_o and_o yet_o he_o must_v give_v this_o person_n the_o sacrament_n at_o least_o till_o he_o prove_v that_o by_o he_o which_o his_o refusal_n to_o speak_v to_o he_o make_v impossible_a to_o be_v public_o prove_v if_o i_o have_v great_a reason_n by_o some_o private_a occasional_a speech_n or_o report_n to_o believe_v that_o many_o of_o the_o parish_n know_v no_o more_o of_o christ_n than_o pagan_n do_v or_o that_o they_o among_o their_o own_o companion_n who_o will_v not_o accuse_v they_o profess_v atheism_n infidelity_n or_o heresy_n or_o if_o after_o scandalous_a fame_n i_o will_v admonish_v they_o to_o repent_v if_o they_o refuse_v to_o speak_v with_o i_o or_o suffer_v i_o not_o to_o come_v and_o speak_v to_o they_o i_o have_v no_o remedy_n but_o must_v still_o continue_v they_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n obj._n you_o will_v not_o have_v such_o man_n force_v yourself_o answ_n but_o i_o will_v not_o be_v force_v then_o myself_o to_o give_v he_o the_o sacrament_n of_o communion_n as_o his_o pastor_n who_o refuse_v to_o speak_v with_o i_o or_o to_o hear_v i_o as_o his_o pastor_n but_o will_v have_v power_n to_o refuse_v that_o pastoral_n administration_n to_o he_o that_o refuse_v the_o rest_n 4._o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o fitness_n of_o any_o one_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o point_n of_o knowledge_n faith_n or_o covenant_v with_o god_n nor_o whether_o he_o understand_v what_o the_o sacrament_n be_v any_o more_o than_o a_o infidel_n or_o idiot_n so_o be_v it_o the_o bishop_n do_v but_o confirm_v he_o in_o his_o childhood_n or_o he_o will_v say_v that_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v confirm_v indeed_o all_o be_v require_v to_o send_v their_o child_n to_o be_v catechise_v but_o 1._o few_o minister_n use_v it_o 2._o few_o person_n in_o a_o parish_n come_v 3._o if_o they_o refuse_v we_o can_v prevent_v their_o further_a communicate_v 4._o it_o be_v but_o to_o say_v over_o the_o word_n of_o that_o catechism_n which_o they_o be_v call_v to_o which_o experience_n tell_v we_o child_n will_v do_v like_o parrot_n without_o understand_v what_o they_o say_v and_o we_o must_v not_o ask_v they_o any_o other_o question_n it_o be_v true_a also_o that_o they_o who_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o bishop_n shall_v bring_v a_o certificate_n from_o the_o minister_n that_o they_o can_v say_v the_o creed_n lord_n prayer_n commandment_n etc._n etc._n but_o they_o may_v choose_v and_o not_o one_o of_o many_o do_v it_o i_o go_v myself_o at_o thirteen_o year_n of_o age_n or_o fourteen_o to_o the_o worthy_a bishop_n morton_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o schoolboy_n without_o any_o certificate_n and_o without_o any_o examination_n he_o hasty_o say_v as_o he_o pass_v on_o three_o or_o four_o line_n of_o a_o prayer_n over_o we_o when_o i_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v and_o after_o this_o no_o minister_n can_v refuse_v any_o one_o at_o age_n the_o sacrament_n the_o rubric_n say_v they_o shall_v open_o own_v their_o baptism_n etc._n etc._n but_o few_o do_v it_o and_o none_o can_v be_v refuse_v for_o not_o do_v it_o and_o so_o the_o transition_n from_o the_o number_n of_o infant_n member_n into_o the_o number_n of_o the_o adult_n be_v make_v without_o the_o minister_n consent_v though_o the_o king_n declaration_n once_o yield_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o communicants_a crowd_n upon_o he_o in_o utter_a ignorance_n because_o they_o be_v baptise_a in_o infancy_n nay_o few_o in_o a_o parish_n not_o one_o of_o many_o hundred_o of_o my_o acquaintance_n be_v ever_o confirm_v by_o the_o bishop_n at_o all_o so_o much_o as_o ceremonious_o or_o regard_v it_o 5._o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o choose_v what_o chapter_n they_o will_v read_v to_o the_o church_n in_o public_a though_o a_o word_n before_o the_o homily_n lib._n 2._o seem_v once_o to_o allow_v it_o they_o but_o every_o day_n in_o the_o year_n even_o weekday_n and_o holiday_n they_o be_v tie_v up_o to_o the_o chapter_n impose_v on_o they_o though_o bell_n and_o the_o dragon_n judith_n susanna_n tobit_n and_o other_o apocryphal_a write_n be_v appoint_v for_o lesson_n even_o about_o 106_o chapter_n of_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la in_o two_o month_n and_o though_o any_o scandal_n or_o other_o occasion_n in_o his_o church_n will_v direct_v he_o to_o choose_v some_o other_o subject_n for_o the_o people_n good_a 6._o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o choose_v what_o word_n to_o use_v in_o his_o public_a prayer_n to_o god_n no_o not_o to_o use_v any_o that_o be_v not_o write_v for_o he_o to_o read_v out_o of_o the_o book_n and_o though_o custom_n have_v so_o use_v minister_n to_o pray_v without_o book_n in_o the_o pulpit_n yet_o this_o be_v but_o connive_v at_o because_o it_o can_v easy_o be_v remedy_v one_o of_o they_o write_v a_o book_n against_o it_o as_o answer_v that_o part_n of_o our_o savoy_n reply_v 1660_o dr._n heylin_n have_v large_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n which_o indeed_o do_v seem_v express_a against_o it_o and_o that_o be_v not_o all_o however_o their_o conscience_n digest_v it_o all_o the_o conformist_n in_o england_n do_v subscribe_v as_o ex_fw-la animo_fw-la a_o covenant_n or_o promise_n that_o they_o will_v use_v the_o form_n in_o the_o say_a book_n prescribe_v in_o public_a prayer_n and_o
with_o six_o or_o seven_o in_o a_o day_n if_o he_o do_v nothing_o else_o shall_v before_o he_o can_v examine_v their_o case_n have_v thousand_o more_o of_o their_o and_o other_o to_o examine_v so_o that_o nothing_o of_o this_o nature_n can_v be_v more_o notorious_a than_o that_o our_o controversy_n with_o the_o bishop_n be_v but_o such_o as_o these_o whether_o the_o lord_n mayor_n alone_o shall_v not_o only_o oversee_v all_o the_o family_n in_o the_o city_n but_o be_v the_o only_a governor_n of_o they_o so_o that_o husband_n parent_n and_o master_n shall_v only_o teach_v and_o exhort_v their_o family_n but_o the_o lord_n mayor_n alone_o shall_v rule_v they_o as_o to_o their_o daily_a work_n their_o speech_n and_o their_o life_n or_o whether_o the_o city_n and_o the_o whole_a diocese_n shall_v have_v but_o one_o schoolmaster_n who_o shall_v be_v the_o sole_a governor_n of_o all_o the_o school_n in_o all_o those_o hundred_o parish_n 20_o or_o 40_o or_o 100_o mile_n distant_a and_o the_o school_n shall_v have_v under_o he_o only_o curate_a usher_n who_o shall_v only_o teach_v the_o boy_n as_o far_o as_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o learn_v and_o for_o all_o their_o untractableness_n disobedience_n absence_n and_o fault_n shall_v present_v their_o name_n to_o a_o chancellor_n court_n set_v up_o by_o the_o sole_a roll_a schoolmaster_n or_o whether_o all_o the_o college_n in_o the_o university_n shall_v have_v no_o governor_n but_o the_o vicechancellor_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v but_o tutor_n to_o the_o volunteer_n or_o whether_o all_o the_o patient_n in_o a_o diocese_n shall_v have_v but_o one_o physician_n to_o govern_v the_o patient_n by_o prescript_n and_o under_o he_o only_a apothecary_n to_o carry_v about_o his_o medicine_n and_o direction_n indeed_o if_o it_o be_v the_o physician_n work_v to_o play_v the_o soldier_n and_o cut_v all_o their_o throat_n it_o may_v be_v do_v in_o a_o short_a time_n but_o heal_v require_v more_o ado_n and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n or_o chancellor_n work_n to_o do_v no_o more_o than_o to_o read_v a_o accusation_n and_o say_v do_v you_o repent_v and_o as_o some_o do_v because_o they_o must_v be_v thrice_o admonish_v to_o say_v at_o once_o i_o admonish_v you_o i_o admonish_v you_o i_o admonish_v you_o i_o excommunicate_v you_o or_o to_o do_v as_o the_o pope_n do_v interdict_v whole_a kingdom_n at_o once_o as_o herod_n kill_v all_o the_o child_n in_o hope_n that_o he_o shall_v meet_v with_o christ_n among_o they_o then_o a_o few_o hand_n may_v do_v the_o work_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o exercise_v the_o discipline_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o diocesan_n way_n on_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o let_v the_o impartial_a judge_n as_o also_o whether_o that_o church_n be_v fitly_o say_v to_o be_v govern_v or_o ungoverned_a where_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o be_v govern_v indeed_o whenas_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n and_o not_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o that_o be_v call_v the_o church_n chap._n xix_o the_o same_o impossibilty_a prove_v by_o experience_n they_o say_v experience_n be_v the_o teacher_n of_o fool_n but_o o_o how_o well_o be_v it_o for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n if_o their_o reverend_a bishop_n who_o think_v themselves_o only_o meet_v to_o govern_v they_o have_v but_o learn_v by_o it_o these_o 1300_o year_n at_o least_o the_o experience_n which_o i_o offer_v you_o be_v 1._o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n what_o work_v the_o enlargement_n of_o their_o diocese_n and_o grow_v great_a by_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o charge_n make_v quick_o by_o the_o destruction_n of_o true_a discipline_n abundance_n of_o forecited_a testimony_n show_v to_o which_o what_o sad_a complaint_n may_v i_o add_v out_o of_o socrates_n chrysostome_n isidore_n pelusiata_n and_o many_o other_o which_o make_v gregory_n nazianz_n orat._n 1._o say_v so_o much_o of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o a_o bishop_n work_n and_o to_o depose_v himself_o when_o contentious_a man_n be_v ready_a to_o depose_v he_o and_o to_o wish_v so_o earnest_o that_o there_o have_v never_o be_v greatness_n and_o priority_n and_o difference_n of_o seat_n as_o upper_a and_o low_a among_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v tire_v with_o their_o contention_n pride_n and_o envy_n even_o of_o the_o orthodox_n themselves_o who_o instead_o of_o do_v the_o work_n contend_v for_o power_n and_o preeminence_n i_o cite_v some_o of_o chrysostom_n saying_n before_o de_fw-fr sacerdot_n l_o 3_o c._n 16._o 17._o where_o he_o show_v the_o greatness_n of_o a_o bishop_n work_n and_o p._n 57_o so_o p._n 58._o nisi_fw-la quotidie_fw-la episcopus_fw-la omnium_fw-la domos_fw-la circumierit_fw-la in_fw-la hac_fw-la parte_fw-la vel_fw-la eas_fw-la superans_fw-la quibus_fw-la nullum_fw-la aliud_fw-la studium_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o foro_fw-la versandi_fw-la deambulandique_fw-la hinc_fw-la omnino_fw-la offensiones_fw-la infinitae_fw-la emergent_a neque_fw-la enim_fw-la ij_o soli_fw-la qui_fw-la aegrotant_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la sani_fw-la sunt_fw-la invisi_fw-la se_fw-la volunt_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la religionis_fw-la ac_fw-la pietatis_fw-la sed_fw-la honoris_fw-la dignitatisque_fw-la potius_fw-la nomine_fw-la plurimi_fw-la sibi_fw-la vendicant_a ac_fw-la si_fw-la quem_fw-la forte_fw-fr contigerit_fw-la ex_fw-la ditioribus_fw-la potentioribusque_fw-la christianis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la usu_fw-la lucroque_fw-la communi_fw-la ita_fw-la urgenti_fw-la ab_fw-la episcope_n frequentius_fw-la invisi_fw-la hic_fw-la protinus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la palpatoris_fw-la atque_fw-la adulatoris_fw-la notam_fw-la sibi_fw-la inurit_fw-la chrysostome_n speak_v like_o a_o man_n that_o know_v by_o experience_n what_o a_o pastor_n work_n be_v and_o if_o our_o bishop_n must_v go_v to_o every_o house_n how_o many_o year_n pilgrimage_n will_v it_o be_v to_o go_v but_o once_o through_o all_o their_o diocese_n bernard_n say_v epist_n 82._o cum_fw-la praesideant_fw-la urbibus_fw-la valde_fw-la populosis_n &_o coetus_fw-la ut_fw-la itadicam_fw-la patrias_fw-la propriae_fw-la diocaeses_fw-la ambitu_fw-la circumcludant_fw-la occasione_n inventâ_fw-la ●●_o quacunque_fw-la veteri_fw-la privilegio_fw-la satagunt_fw-la ut_fw-la vicinas_fw-la sibi_fw-la subdant_fw-la civitates_fw-la quatenus_fw-la dvae_fw-la quibus_fw-la vix_fw-la due_a praesules_fw-la sufficiebant_fw-la sub_fw-la uno_fw-la redigantur_fw-la antistite_fw-la and_o the_o doleful_a lapse_n of_o discipline_n hereupon_o all_o history_n witness_v which_o make_v erasmus_n say_v eccles_n lib._n 1._o quantum_fw-la negoti●_n credimus_fw-la esse_fw-la cum_fw-la praeter_fw-la vicos_fw-la &_o pa●os_fw-la viginti_fw-la frequentes_fw-la &_o amplae_fw-la civitates_fw-la such_o as_o our_o big_a market_n town_n uni_fw-la parent_n antistiti_fw-la et_fw-la multorum_fw-la praesulum_fw-la ditio_fw-la tam_fw-la late_a patet_fw-la ut_fw-la siquam_fw-la maxim_n forent_fw-la expediti_fw-la omnibus_fw-la mundanis_fw-la negotiis_fw-la non_fw-la possent_fw-la tamen_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la oppidis_fw-la concionari_fw-la quum_fw-la body_n una_fw-la civitas_fw-la quamplures_fw-la requirit_fw-la ecclesiastes_n how_o much_o less_o will_n one_o perform_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n work_n say_v musculus_fw-la loc._n commun_n de_fw-fr minist_n p._n mihi_fw-la 438._o quare_fw-la viderint_fw-la episcopi_fw-la etc._n etc._n letoy_n bishop_n look_v to_o it_o who_o when_o they_o can_v or_o do_v not_o right_o minister_v to_o one_o church_n extend_v their_o power_n not_o to_o some_o few_o church_n but_o to_o whole_a province_n let_v they_o read_v chrysostome_n on_o tit_n 1._o per_fw-la civitates_fw-la in_o every_o city_n etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n make_v luther_n say_v advers._fw-la falsò_fw-la nominatum_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcop_n to._n 2._o p._n 310._o perinde_v habet_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v with_o these_o wicked_a ungodly_a bishop_n all_o one_o as_o if_o the_o devil_n himself_o shall_v mitre_a and_o ring_v sit_v in_o the_o chair_n and_o himself_o rule_v the_o people_n and_o bishop_n hooker_n in_o 8_o precep_n say_v et_fw-la certe_fw-la si_fw-la jam_fw-la vigeret_fw-la antiquus_fw-la ille_fw-la ergae_fw-la populum_fw-la amor_fw-la if_o they_o have_v the_o ancient_a love_n to_o the_o people_n they_o will_v themselves_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v more_o work_n in_o one_o city_n than_o the_o best_a man_n can_v easy_o do_v they_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v no_o such_o bishop_n till_o the_o time_n of_o silvester_n the_o first_o i_o cite_v this_o ex_fw-la altar_n damascen_n have_v not_o the_o book_n at_o hand_n filesacus_n tell_v we_o ex_fw-la council_n triburiensi_fw-la c._n 26._o relata_fw-la est_fw-la coram_fw-la sancta_fw-la synodo_fw-la quaeremonia_fw-la plebium_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la sint_fw-la quidam_fw-la episcopi_fw-la nolentes_fw-la ad_fw-la predicandum_fw-la vel_fw-la ad_fw-la confirmandum_fw-la svas_fw-la per_fw-la annum_fw-la paraecias_fw-la circuire_fw-la de_fw-fr orig._n paraec_fw-la p._n 537._o what_o will_v they_o have_v do_v if_o they_o have_v be_v in_o our_o time_n see_v isidore_n pelus_n ep._n 246._o l._n 2._o p_o 236._o teach_a bishop_n eusebius_n and_o theodosius_n what_o a_o church_n be_v who_o have_v so_o far_o lose_v the_o true_a episcopacy_n as_o to_o take_v wall_n for_o man_n and_o to_o abuse_v and_o scorn_v
the_o way_n to_o make_v he_o hate_v they_o 15._o and_o the_o office_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v such_o as_o that_o truth_n and_o goodness_n be_v the_o ware_n which_o they_o expose_v to_o sinner_n choice_n and_o light_n and_o love_n be_v the_o effect_n which_o spirit_n word_n and_o ministry_n be_v appoint_v to_o produce_v and_o by_o light_n and_o love_n they_o must_v be_v wrought_v therefore_o no_o minister_n ●oth_o his_o work_n or_o do_v any_o good_a to_o some_o if_o by_o light_n and_o love_n and_o holy_a life_n he_o help_v not_o the_o people_n to_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o the_o adjunction_n of_o jail_n and_o confiscation_n be_v so_o contrary_a to_o his_o office_n and_o design_n as_o obscure_v or_o destroy_v it_o though_o enemy_n may_v be_v restrain_v and_o peace_n keep_v by_o force_n 16._o true_a discipline_n can_v be_v exercise_v this_o way_n not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v lose_v in_o the_o confusion_n of_o power_n as_o a_o little_a wine_n in_o wormwood_n juice_n but_o because_o the_o number_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o church_n member_n will_v make_v it_o impossible_a enemy_n and_o rebellious_a carnal_a mind_n be_v not_o subject_a nor_o can_v be_v to_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n you_o may_v affright_v they_o to_o a_o sacrament_n but_o one_o of_o they_o will_v make_v a_o minister_n such_o work_n who_o will_v but_o call_v they_o to_o credible_a repentance_n for_o their_o crime_n and_o will_v renew_v those_o crime_n so_o oft_o till_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o will_v so_o hate_v those_o that_o excommunicate_a as_o will_v tell_v you_o what_o can_v be_v do_v when_o all_o such_o be_v force_v unwilling_o into_o the_o church_n of_o this_o i_o have_v speak_v at_o large_a in_o my_o book_n of_o confirmation_n 17._o it_o tend_v great_o to_o harden_v the_o sinner_n in_o the_o church_n in_o their_o impenitence_n to_o their_o damnation_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v that_o let_v one_o swear_v and_o curse_v and_o be_v drink_v every_o day_n in_o the_o week_n if_o he_o will_v but_o say_v i_o repent_v rather_o than_o lie_v in_o jail_n he_o shall_v be_v absolve_v by_o the_o chancellor_n in_o the_o bishop_n come_v and_o have_v a_o seal_a pardon_n deliver_v he_o in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o minister_n who_o know_v his_o wicked_a life_n how_o easy_a a_o way_n to_o heaven_n which_o lead_v to_o hell_n do_v such_o good-natured_a cruel_a church_n make_v man_n obj._n the_o minister_n be_v to_o refuse_v the_o scandalous_a ans_fw-fr not_o when_o he_o be_v absolve_v by_o the_o chancellor_n obj._n but_o if_o he_o sin_v again_o he_o may_v refuse_v he_o again_o ans_fw-fr how_o far_o that_o be_v true_a i_o show_v before_o but_o not_o when_o he_o be_v absolve_v again_o and_o he_o may_v be_v absolve_v toties_fw-la quoties_fw-la if_o he_o have_v but_o rather_o say_v i_o repent_v than_o lie_n in_o jail_n 18._o let_v but_o the_o ancient_a canon_n be_v peruse_v and_o how_o contrary_a to_o they_o will_v this_o course_n appear_v the_o ancient_a church_n will_v admit_v none_o to_o absolution_n and_o communion_n after_o divers_a great_a crime_n till_o they_o have_v wait_v as_o be_v aforesaid_a in_o beg_v and_o tear_n and_o that_o for_o so_o long_a a_o term_n and_o with_o such_o penitential_a expression_n as_o satisfy_v the_o church_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o repentance_n it_o will_v be_v tedious_a to_o recite_v the_o canon_n how_o great_a a_o part_n of_o cyprian_n epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n and_o rome_n be_v on_o this_o subject_n reprehend_v the_o confessor_n and_o presbyter_n for_o take_v lapse_v person_n into_o church_n communion_n before_o they_o have_v fulfil_v their_o penitential_a course_n and_o what_o a_o reproach_n do_v they_o cast_v upon_o all_o these_o bishop_n church_n and_o discipline_n who_o say_v that_o sinner_n must_v be_v take_v into_o communion_n if_o they_o will_v prefer_v it_o before_o a_o jail_n though_o they_o love_v a_o wherehouse_n a_o alehouse_n a_o playhouse_n a_o game_n house_n yea_o a_o swine-stie_n better_o than_o the_o church_n yet_o if_o they_o do_v not_o love_v a_o jail_n with_o beggary_n better_o they_o shall_v be_v receive_v 19_o even_o when_o christian_a emperor_n have_v advance_v prelate_n and_o give_v they_o though_o not_o the_o sword_n yet_o the_o aid_n of_o it_o in_o the_o magistrate_n hand_n to_o second_v they_o they_o never_o use_v it_o to_o force_v any_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o to_o defend_v they_o and_o to_o repress_v their_o adversary_n yea_o when_o prelate_n themselves_o begin_v to_o use_v the_o sword_n or_o to_o desire_v the_o magistrate_n to_o serve_v they_o by_o it_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o to_o force_v man_n to_o say_v they_o repent_v and_o so_o to_o be_v absolve_v and_o communicate_v but_o only_o to_o keep_v heretic_n from_o their_o own_o assembling_n and_o from_o publish_v their_o own_o doctrine_n or_o maintain_v they_o or_o from_o be_v pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o now_o man_n will_v force_v they_o to_o be_v absolve_v and_o communicate_v and_o how_o great_a mischief_n do_v even_o so_o much_o use_v of_o the_o sword_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o heretic_n then_o be_v though_o they_o be_v not_o force_v into_o the_o church_n socrates_n brand_v cyril_n of_o alexandria_n successor_n for_o the_o first_o prelate_n that_o use_v the_o sword_n and_o what_o work_n do_v he_o make_v with_o it_o he_o invade_v a_o kind_n of_o secular_a magistracy_n he_o set_v himself_o against_o the_o governor_n orestes_n and_o under_o his_o shadow_n those_o bloody_a murder_n be_v commit_v on_o the_o jew_n who_o also_o ●illed_v many_o of_o the_o christian_n the_o monk_n of_o mount_n nystra_n rise_v to_o the_o number_n of_o 500_o and_o assault_v the_o civil_a governor_n and_o wound_v he_o and_o amonius_n who_o do_v it_o be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o orestes_n and_o cyril_n make_v a_o martyr_n of_o he_o till_o be_v ashamed_a of_o it_o he_o suffer_v his_o memorial_n to_o be_v abolish_v and_o when_o hypatia_n a_o most_o excellent_a woman_n of_o the_o heathen_n be_v famous_a for_o her_o public_a teach_n of_o philosophy_n peter_n one_o of_o cyril_n reader_n become_v the_o head_n of_o a_o party_n of_o that_o church_n who_o watch_v the_o woman_n and_o drag_v she_o out_o of_o a_o coach_n into_o a_o church_n strip_v she_o of_o her_o clothes_n and_o tear_v her_o flesh_n with_o sharp_a shell_n till_o they_o kill_v she_o and_o then_o tear_v her_o member_n in_o piece_n and_o carry_v they_o to_o a_o place_n call_v cynaron_n and_o burn_v they_o for_o which_o we_o read_v of_o no_o punishment_n execute_v socrat._v lib._n 7._o c._n 13._o 14_o 15._o and_o it_o be_v this_o s._n cyril_n who_o deprive_v the_o novatian_o of_o their_o church_n and_o take_v away_o all_o the_o secret_a treasure_n of_o they_o and_o spoil_v the_o bishop_n theopompus_n of_o all_o his_o fortune_n socrat._v l._n 7._o c_o 7._o what_o his_o nephew_n and_o successor_n theophilus_n be_v and_o do_v you_o have_v hear_v before_o and_o shall_v hear_v more_o anon_o what_o the_o ancient_a christian_n think_v of_o use_v the_o sword_n against_o heretic_n though_o they_o compel_v they_o not_o to_o the_o church_n and_o sacrament_n any_o man_n that_o read_v their_o write_n may_v see_v viz._n tertullian_n arnobius_n la●tantius_n and_o abundance_n more_o and_o the_o case_n of_o s._n martin_n towards_o ithacius_n and_o idacius_n i_o have_v oft_o enough_o repeat_v only_o i_o can_v but_o note_v the_o impudence_n of_o bellarmine_n who_o the_o scriptor_n eccles_n de_fw-fr idacio_n false_o make_v idacius_n to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o ithacius_n when_o he_o be_v but_o one_o of_o his_o associate_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o idacius_n fall_v under_o the_o reprehension_n and_o punishment_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o eo_fw-la reprehensus_fw-la &_o punitus_fw-la ab_fw-la episcopis_fw-la fuit_fw-la quod_fw-la priscillianum_fw-la apud_fw-la seculares_fw-la accusaverit_fw-la &_o occidi_fw-la curaverit_fw-la whereas_o sulpitius_n severus_n tell_v we_o that_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o synod_n join_v with_o they_o and_o one_o s._n martin_n and_o one_o french_a bishop_n more_o disow_v and_o refuse_v they_o and_o martin_n will_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o they_o to_o the_o death_n save_o that_o once_o at_o the_o emperor_n persuasion_n he_o communicate_v with_o they_o to_o save_v a_o prisoner_n life_n which_o be_v give_v he_o on_o that_o condition_n and_o yet_o be_v chastise_v by_o a_o angel_n even_o for_o that_o and_o ambrose_n at_o milan_n also_o disow_v they_o as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o his_o life_n and_o when_o the_o deed_n be_v do_v the_o christian_n speak_v ill_o of_o ithacius_n and_o idacius_n for_o take_v that_o new_a and_o bloody_a way_n which_o before_o the_o church_n common_o disow_v but_o they_o pretend_v that_o they_o do_v not_o cause_v this_o
and_o work_n upon_o they_o 4._o that_o it_o make_v the_o discipline_n or_o government_n institute_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o very_a matter_n of_o it_o to_o become_v impossible_a and_o impracticable_a and_o so_o exclude_v it_o under_o pretence_n that_o they_o be_v the_o only_a person_n empower_v for_o it_o and_o they_o set_v up_o a_o kind_n of_o secular_a court_n and_o government_n in_o its_o stead_n and_o so_o be_v practical_o erastians_n i_o shall_v conclude_v all_o with_o these_o consectary_n which_o follow_v what_o be_v already_o prove_v cons._n 1._o such_o diocesane_a principle_n great_o strengthen_v the_o brownist_n cause_n who_o deny_v we_o to_o have_v any_o church_n or_o ministry_n of_o divine_a institution_n as_o be_v before_o show_v and_o as_o for_o they_o that_o say_v no_o form_n of_o church_n government_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n ans_fw-fr 1._o it_o be_v well_o that_o they_o be_v force_v to_o except_v both_o the_o universal_a and_o the_o particular_a church_n and_o expound_v this_o only_a of_o association_n of_o church_n 2._o it_o be_v well_o that_o yet_o they_o confess_v that_o the_o office_n of_o pastor_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n who_o be_v make_v church_n governor_n by_o christ_n 3._o but_o it_o be_v scant_o well_o that_o yet_o they_o subscribe_v to_o the_o book_n of_o ordination_n which_o assert_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o three_o distinct_a order_n if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o 4._o and_o these_o also_o too_o much_o gratify_v the_o brownist_n who_o affirm_v that_o we_o have_v no_o church_n of_o divine_a institution_n and_o think_v that_o it_o be_v no_o fault_n to_o separate_v but_o from_o a_o church_n of_o humane_a invention_n cons_n 2._o to_o say_v that_o no_o man_n high_a or_o low_o be_v bind_v in_o his_o place_n and_o calling_n to_o endeavour_v a_o reformation_n of_o such_o a_o church-government_n and_o so_o to_o justify_v the_o neglecter_n and_o opposer_n of_o all_o such_o reformation_n be_v to_o draw_v upon_o a_o man_n self_n the_o guilt_n of_o so_o much_o pollution_n and_o of_o the_o ruin_n of_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o soul_n as_o shall_v make_v that_o conscience_n smart_n and_o tremble_v which_o be_v not_o sear_v and_o pass_v all_o feel_n cons_n 3._o to_o swear_v or_o subscribe_v or_o say_v and_o declare_v that_o though_o million_o shall_v swear_v to_o endeavour_v such_o a_o reformation_n in_o their_o place_n and_o calling_n by_o lawful_a mean_n there_o be_v no_o obligation_n lie_v on_o any_o one_o of_o they_o from_o that_o vow_n or_o oath_n so_o to_o endeavour_v it_o be_v the_o lord_n have_v mercy_n on_o that_o land_n city_n or_o soul_n that_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o cons_n 4._o all_o carnal_a interest_n and_o all_o carnal_a reason_n be_v on_o the_o diocesanes_n side_n and_o all_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o consequent_o all_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v therefore_o while_o carnal_a christian_n make_v a_o religion_n of_o their_o lust_n and_o interest_n and_o pride_n and_o covetousness_n and_o idleness_n be_v more_o predominant_a than_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o the_o love_n of_o soul_n no_o wonder_n if_o the_o diocesane_a cause_n prevail_v with_o such_o cons_n 5._o a_o true_o sanctify_a heart_n know_v the_o nature_n and_o worth_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o nature_n and_o weight_n of_o the_o pastoral_n office_n and_o be_v devote_v to_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o soul_n and_o contemn_v the_o ease_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o riches_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o this_o world_n and_o be_v the_o best_a argument_n in_o the_o world_n against_o such_o diocesane_a prelacy_n and_o must_v at_o least_o be_v weaken_v before_o it_o can_v subscribe_v never_o to_o endeavour_v to_o amend_v it_o cons_n 6._o no_o wonder_n if_o the_o most_o serious_a zealous_a practical_a sort_n of_o christian_n be_v ordinary_o against_o such_o diocesanes_n prelacy_n when_o it_o have_v the_o describe_v effect_n and_o that_o those_o among_o themselves_o cons_n 7._o no_o wonder_n if_o the_o principal_a work_n of_o such_o diocesanes_n be_v to_o silence_n faithful_a preacher_n and_o persecute_v zealous_a christian_n where_o they_o have_v espouse_v a_o cause_n so_o contrary_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o godliness_n that_o all_o these_o be_v unreconcilable_a thereto_o speak_v not_o of_o any_o other_o prelacy_n cons_n 8._o take_v but_o from_o such_o prelacy_n the_o plume_n which_o it_o have_v steal_v from_o magistrate_n and_o presbyter_n and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o naked_a thing_n and_o simple_o a_o name_n cons_n 9_o if_o magistrate_n be_v not_o the_o prelate_n executioner_n or_o second_v they_o not_o by_o writ_n de_fw-la excommunicato_fw-la capiendo_fw-la etc._n etc._n such_o prelacy_n will_v give_v up_o as_o dead_a or_o weary_a of_o itself_o cons_n 10._o the_o ill_a mixture_n of_o force_n and_o secular_a power_n corrupt_v church_n discipline_n and_o deprive_v it_o of_o its_o proper_a nature_n use_n and_o force_n make_v it_o another_o thing_n or_o undiscernible_a cons_n 11._o though_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n civil_a ruler_n may_v trust_v church_n man_n with_o part_n of_o their_o power_n about_o religion_n it_o be_v far_o better_a out_o of_o necessity_n that_o they_o keep_v if_o whole_o to_o themselves_o and_o let_v they_o thunder_v their_o excommunication_n without_o any_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n cons_n 12._o such_o bishop_n and_o arch-bishop_n as_o overthrow_v not_o the_o church_n officer_n and_o discipline_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v submit_v to_o by_o all_o peaceable_a man_n though_o we_o can_v prove_v they_o as_o such_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n chap._n xxiv_o some_o testimony_n of_o prelatist_n of_o the_o late_a state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n lest_o we_o be_v suppose_v partial_a in_o our_o description_n of_o it_o 1._o for_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o late_a state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o reader_n may_v find_v some_o light_n in_o the_o lord_n falkland_n parliament_n speech_n and_o sir_n edward_n dearing_n and_o in_o heylin_n own_o history_n of_o the_o sabbath_n with_o pocklington_n sunday_n no_o sabbath_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n book_n of_o the_o holy_a table_n name_n and_o thing_n and_o dr._n heylens_n answer_n to_o he_o and_o the_o same_o heylins_n history_n of_o archbishop_n laud_n and_o from_o mr._n thornedicks_n four_o last_o book_n ii_o to_o what_o common_a scorn_n all_o serious_a godliness_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o rabble_n through_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o name_n puritan_n use_v by_o the_o prelatist_n to_o make_v odious_a the_o nonconformist_n be_v after_o show_v out_o of_o bishop_n downame_n and_o mr._n robert_n bolton_n who_o be_v large_a and_o frequent_a in_o it_o iii_o bishop_n hall_n confession_n of_o the_o corruption_n in_o the_o church_n governor_n and_o government_n in_o his_o modest_a offer_n and_o peacemaker_n and_o his_o disclaim_v those_o that_o deny_v it_o i_o have_v cite_v elsewhere_o iv._o william_n archbishop_n of_o york_n morton_n bishop_n of_o durham_n with_o many_o other_o episcopal_a divine_n of_o great_a name_n and_o worth_n do_v assemble_v in_o westminister_n and_o collect_v a_o catalogue_n of_o thing_n need_v reformation_n in_o discipline_n and_o worship_n which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o print_n v._o a_o prelatical_a divine_a in_o a_o treat_n call_v england_n faithful_a reprover_n and_o monitor_n thus_o speak_v to_o his_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n pag._n 60_o 61._o etc._n etc._n and_o now_o with_o what_o depth_n of_o sorrow_n ought_v we_o to_o recount_v your_o past_a error_n partly_o through_o neglect_n of_o duty_n partly_o through_o abuse_n of_o power_n ithacia●●_n be_v the_o faithful_a in_o your_o trust_n do_v you_o diligent_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a severe_o punish_v the_o disobedient_a endeavour_v to_o reclaim_v those_o that_o walk_v disorderly_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n that_o you_o be_v violent_o bend_v against_o action_n and_o schism_n against_o singularity_n and_o nonconformity_n all_o confess_v a_o few_o except_v who_o think_v nothing_o too_o much_o yea_o nothing_o enough_o in_o this_o kind_n how_o opposite_a soever_o to_o christian_a mildness_n prudence_n and_o conscience_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n by_o reason_n of_o your_o connivance_n or_o supineness_n in_o the_o episcopal_a office_n ignorance_n and_o superstition_n every_o where_o mislead_v the_o people_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o wander_v in_o darkness_n not_o know_v whither_o they_o go_v profaneness_n like_o a_o rank_n pernicious_a weed_n overspread_v the_o field_n and_o vineyard_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o profane_a and_o vicious_a life_n of_o those_o who_o stand_v up_o in_o defence_n of_o your_o government_n profane_a occasional_o give_v increase_v and_o add_v strength_n to_o the_o opposite_a factious_a party_n who_o allege_v this_o as_o one_o main_a ground_n of_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n that_o those_o who_o adhere_v to_o it_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n
ask_v whether_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n have_v not_o power_n to_o set_v up_o a_o bishop_n in_o every_o corporation_n and_o to_o take_v down_o dean_n arch-deacon_n chancellor_n official_o etc._n etc._n and_o sew_v deny_v it_o 5._o i_o ask_v myself_o i●_n the_o king_n and_o parliament_n make_v such_o a_o change_n and_o command_v my_o consent_n whether_o i_o must_v disobey_v they_o and_o forestall_v my_o obedience_n by_o a_o covenant_n and_o oath_n 6._o i_o think_v that_o what_o be_v impose_v on_o all_o the_o clergy_n to_o day_n may_v be_v impose_v on_o the_o laity_n next_o and_o then_o all_o parliament_n man_n will_v be_v swear_v and_o covenant_v never_o in_o parliament_n so_o much_o as_o to_o consent_v to_o change_v any_o of_o the_o church_n government_n now_o establish_v 7._o i_o find_v that_o i_o must_v also_o swear_v that_o it_o ought_v so_o to_o stand_v which_o can_v mean_v no_o less_o than_o by_o a_o divine_a law_n when_o man_n law_n may_v not_o alter_v it_o 8._o i_o find_v such_o heartiness_n willingness_n require_v in_o the_o swearer_n as_o require_v very_o full_a satisfaction_n in_o all_o this_o and_o that_o with_o the_o terrible_a re-nuncication_a of_o the_o help_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n if_o i_o do_v not_o all_o that_o i_o swear_v to_o 9_o and_o i_o must_v be_v deprive_v of_o my_o office_n for_o benefice_n i_o have_v none_o and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o ministry_n if_o i_o refuse_v to_o take_v this_o episcopal_a covenant_n and_o oath_n 10._o and_o i_o know_v that_o he_o that_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o deliberate_a perjury_n have_v little_a reason_n to_o hope_v that_o he_o have_v any_o good_a conscience_n true_a grace_n or_o honesty_n and_o special_o if_o he_o concur_v to_o involve_v all_o the_o clergy_n or_o nation_n in_o the_o guilt_n upon_o these_o consideration_n i_o set_v myself_o to_o a_o more_o search_a study_n of_o the_o matter_n i_o read_v gersom_a bucer_n didoclave_n jacob_n and_o after_o parker_n bains_n and_o other_o on_o one_o side_n and_o all_o that_o i_o can_v get_v on_o the_o other_o downam_n again_o bilson_n hooker_n saravia_n andrews_n and_o many_o more_o and_o the_o result_n of_o my_o search_n be_v this_o i_o wonder_v to_o find_v so_o many_o write_v for_o and_o against_o episcopacy_n without_o distinguish_v the_o sort_n of_o episcopacy_n for_o i_o find_v reason_n to_o think_v one_o sort_n at_o least_o tolerable_a yea_o desirable_a but_o that_o which_o the_o oath_n of_o 1640._o will_v have_v bind_v i_o to_o i_o find_v great_a reason_n to_o judge_v to_o be_v but_o what_o i_o have_v describe_v it_o in_o this_o book_n and_o i_o here_o give_v notice_n to_o the_o reader_n that_o wherever_o he_o find_v i_o speak_v as_o against_o the_o english_a diocesane_n prelacy_n i_o mean_v it_o as_o describe_v by_o cousin_n and_o dr._n zouch_v and_o as_o relate_v to_o that_o oath_n and_o canon_n and_o not_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n this_o judgement_n then_o settle_v i_o never_o can_v see_v cause_n to_o change_v but_o the_o more_o i_o read_v of_o the_o ancient_n church_n history_n counsel_n etc._n etc._n and_o many_o other_o writer_n for_o episcopacy_n petavius_n sancta_fw-la clara_n spalatensis_n dr._n hamond_n and_o many_o more_o the_o more_o be_v i_o confirm_v in_o it_o to_o this_o day_n when_o usurpation_n be_v at_o the_o high_a i_o write_v according_o in_o my_o book_n call_v disputation_n of_o church_n government_n when_o the_o king_n come_v home_o i_o according_o use_v my_o endeavour_n as_o a_o reconciler_n with_o the_o minister_n here_o call_v presbyterian_o who_o seem_v most_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o how_o little_a a_o alteration_n of_o the_o church_n government_n in_o the_o king_n declaration_n of_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n do_v we_o receive_v with_o thankfulness_n and_o it_o will_v have_v be_v with_o a_o conform_v joy_n but_o that_o we_o know_v the_o lead_a man_n that_o treat_v with_o we_o too_o well_o to_o hope_v that_o they_o have_v any_o intention_n to_o continue_v it_o but_o to_o use_v it_o they_o know_v to_o what_o till_o they_o have_v do_v their_o work_n and_o get_v this_o act_n of_o uniformity_n in_o 1668._o after_o i_o have_v be_v in_o the_o goal_n and_o yet_o man_n call_v for_o the_o reason_n of_o my_o nonconformity_n i_o draw_v up_o some_o of_o my_o thought_n rude_o and_o in_o 1671._o the_o call_v be_v renew_v i_o write_v this_o book_n as_o now_o it_o be_v save_v a_o few_o additional_a note_n but_o cast_v it_o by_o my_o friend_n and_o my_o experience_n persuade_v i_o that_o the_o bishop_n and_o their_o parliament_n adherence_n can_v not_o patient_o bear_v it_o many_o year_n after_o some_o letter_n pass_v between_o mr._n henry_n dodwell_n then_o of_o ireland_n and_o i_o and_o his_o last_o be_v tedious_a and_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o intend_v or_o desire_v a_o publication_n of_o they_o i_o give_v he_o but_o a_o short_a general_a return_n instead_o of_o a_o voluminous_a particular_a answer_n especial_o because_o i_o have_v this_o book_n write_v by_o i_o in_o which_o i_o have_v more_o than_o answer_v he_o and_o be_v not_o willing_a or_o at_o leisure_n to_o write_v over_o the_o same_o thing_n again_o but_o when_o i_o have_v late_o write_v in_o my_o book_n of_o concord_n a_o summary_n consutation_n of_o mr._n dodwel_v schismatical_a volume_n in_o which_o he_o degrade_v unchurch_v if_o not_o unchristen_v so_o many_o of_o the_o protestant_n as_o have_v no_o sacrament_n no_o covenant_n right_a to_o salvation_n but_o sin_v against_o the_o holy-ghost_n and_o all_o for_o want_v of_o a_o ministry_n derive_v by_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o can_v not_o by_o importunity_n prevail_v with_o he_o to_o answer_v voetius_fw-la de_fw-la desperata_fw-la causa_fw-la papatus_fw-la or_o my_o dispute_n of_o ordination_n at_o last_o i_o receive_v a_o letter_n from_o he_o signify_v his_o purpose_n upon_o his_o friend_n desire_v to_o publish_v his_o long_a letter_n write_v to_o i_o out_o of_o ireland_n so_o that_o i_o see_v a_o necessity_n of_o publish_v my_o treatise_n which_o contain_v more_o than_o a_o answer_n to_o he_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o some_o r._n reverend_a bishop_n and_o other_o have_v urge_v i_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o my_o nonconformity_n so_o that_o i_o have_v not_o leave_v to_o suppress_v this_o book_n nor_o be_v long_o silent_a and_o yet_o i_o fear_v that_o they_o that_o so_o call_v for_o it_o will_v not_o easy_o bear_v it_o the_o sum_n of_o mr._n dodwels_n letter_n to_o i_o now_o in_o the_o press_n be_v to_o prove_v the_o possibility_n of_o right_a discipline_n by_o our_o diocesane_a government_n as_o it_o be_v 1._o because_o magistrate_n can_v exercise_v they_o by_o as_o few_o 2._o because_o the_o ancient_n de_fw-mi facto_fw-la do_v it_o by_o such_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v do_v to_o answer_v these_o two_o be_v to_o answer_v his_o letter_n which_o one_o will_v think_v shall_v be_v so_o easy_a that_o no_o scholar_n shall_v have_v need_n of_o help_n to_o do_v it_o 1._o if_o any_o man_n canby_o a_o harangue_n of_o word_n be_v bring_v to_o renounce_v his_o reason_n and_o experience_n so_o far_o as_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n may_v be_v perform_v to_o as_o many_o parish_n as_o the_o office_n of_o a_o major_a or_o justice_n of_o peace_n may_v and_o that_o pastor_n have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v in_o watch_v over_o particular_a soul_n instruct_v exhort_v convince_a comfort_a visit_a worpsh_a govern_v &c_n &c_n than_o the_o work_n of_o a_o justice_n of_o peace_n amount_v to_o and_o that_o dr._n stillingfleet_n e._n g._n shall_v be_v excuse_v if_o he_o do_v no_o more_o for_o his_o parish_n than_o justice_n rog._n l'estrange_n do_v i_o undertake_v not_o to_o convince_v that_o man_n of_o any_o thing_n read_v over_o the_o work_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o i_o have_v here_o describe_v it_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o dr._n hamond_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o a_o justice_n work_n and_o if_o you_o can_v yet_o be_v deceive_v by_o mr._n dodwel_n be_v deceive_v and_o yet_o i_o think_v there_o be_v in_o divers_a parish_n about_o we_o many_o justice_n for_o one_o pastor_n i_o be_o confident_a london_n diocese_n have_v a_o great_a number_n for_o one_o bishop_n and_o either_o our_o justice_n be_v bind_v beside_o what_o now_o they_o do_v to_o labour_v as_o much_o to_o bring_v some_o to_o repentance_n and_o such_o other_o work_n as_o the_o pastor_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v or_o not_o if_o not_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o as_o large_a a_o circuit_n may_v be_v govern_v by_o one_o pastor_n as_o by_o one_o justice_n if_o yea_o than_o he_o do_v but_o condemn_v the_o justice_n for_o unfaithfulness_n which_o will_v not_o prove_v that_o a_o
pastor_n be_v ready_a to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o ministry_n and_o to_o answer_v any_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v allege_v against_o he_o and_o that_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o synod_n oblige_v all_o against_o unnecessary_a singularity_n 10._o we_o refuse_v not_o that_o one_o in_o every_o such_o synod_n be_v the_o moderator_n and_o if_o as_o of_o old_a every_o city_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o corporation_n have_v a_o bishop_n so_o if_o but_o every_o corporation_n or_o market_n town_n or_o every_o circuit_n that_o have_v as_o many_o communicant_n as_o can_v know_v one_o another_o by_o neighbourhood_n and_o some_o conversation_n and_o sometime_o assemble_v like_o a_o great_a parish_n with_o many_o chapel_n have_v but_o so_o much_o power_n as_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o true_a particular_a pastor_n and_o church_n yea_o or_o but_o the_o power_n that_o a_o free_a tutor_n philosopher_n or_o physician_n have_v to_o manage_v his_o office_n by_o his_o skill_n and_o not_o as_o a_o apothecary_n or_o mere_a executor_n of_o a_o stranger_n dictate_v we_o shall_v quiet_o submit_v 11._o and_o as_o we_o refuse_v not_o such_o bishop_n even_o durante_fw-la vita_fw-la &_o capacitate_v in_o every_o church_n or_o city_n that_o be_v corporation_n so_o if_o it_o please_v either_o the_o king_n or_o the_o church_n by_o his_o permission_n to_o give_v one_o grave_n and_o able_a man_n a_o general_a care_n of_o many_o church_n as_o even_o the_o scots_a superintendent_o have_v at_o their_o reformation_n as_o spotswood_n of_o lothian_n etc._n etc._n not_o by_o violence_n to_o silence_n and_o oppress_v but_o by_o mere_a pastoral_n power_n and_o only_o such_o as_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o use_v to_o instruct_v junior_a pastor_n to_o reprove_v admonish_v etc._n etc._n we_o resist_v not_o and_o so_o if_o godly_a diocesan_n will_v become_v archbishop_n only_o of_o this_o sort_n and_o promote_v o●r_o work_v instead_o of_o hinder_v it_o we_o shall_v submit_v though_o we_o can_v swear_v approbation_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o christian_a minister_n may_v doubt_v of_o and_o no_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n 12._o and_o if_o the_o king_n do_v cumulate_v wealth_n and_o honour_n on_o they_o and_o give_v they_o their_o place_n in_o parliament_n to_o keep_v the_o clergy_n from_o contempt_n yea_o or_o trust_v any_o of_o they_o under_o he_o as_o magistrate_n with_o the_o sword_n whether_o we_o like_v it_o or_o not_o we_o shall_v peaceable_o submit_v and_o obey_v they_o as_o magistrate_n 13._o and_o if_o for_o order_n sake_n these_o diocesan_n shall_v have_v a_o negative_a voice_n unless_o in_o case_n of_o forfeiture_n or_o necessity_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n to_o the_o church_n universal_a not_o take_v away_o the_o power_n of_o particular_a church_n to_o choose_v or_o at_o least_o free_o consent_n or_o dissent_v as_o to_o the_o fix_v of_o pastor_n over_o themselves_o we_o will_v submit_v to_o all_o this_o for_o common_a peace_n special_o if_o the_o magistrate_n only_o choose_v man_n to_o benefice_n and_o magistracy_n and_o none_o have_v the_o pastoral_a power_n of_o the_o key_n but_o by_o the_o election_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o people_n consent_n which_o be_v the_o judgement_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o episcopacy_n till_o of_o late_a 14._o and_o last_o we_o hold_v the_o magistrate_n the_o only_a governor_n by_o the_o sword_n as_o well_o of_o pastor_n as_o of_o physician_n and_o all_o other_o and_o though_o he_o may_v not_o take_v the_o work_n of_o our_o proper_a call_n out_o of_o our_o hand_n no_o more_o than_o the_o physician_n yet_o he_o may_v by_o justice_n and_o discretion_n punish_v we_o for_o maladministration_n and_o drive_v we_o to_o our_o duty_n though_o not_o hinder_v we_o from_o it_o and_o we_o consent_v to_o do_v all_o under_o his_o government_n judge_v now_o whether_o we_o set_v up_o pope_n or_o tyrant_n by_o all_o this_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o design_n of_o this_o treatise_n to_o overthrow_v or_o weaken_v the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o to_o strengthen_v and_o secure_v it_o against_o all_o its_o notorious_a danger_n 1._o by_o reform_v those_o thing_n which_o else_o undoubted_o will_v cause_v a_o succession_n of_o dissenter_n in_o all_o generation_n though_o all_o we_o the_o present_a nonconformist_n be_v quick_o like_a to_o be_v past_o trouble_v they_o or_o be_v trouble_v by_o they_o even_o of_o themselves_o many_o will_n turn_v upon_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o have_v convince_v we_o 2._o by_o unite_n all_o protestant_n and_o turn_v their_o odious_a wrath_n and_o contention_n into_o a_o reverence_n of_o their_o pastor_n and_o into_o mutual_a love_n and_o help_v this_o treatise_n be_v hasten_v in_o three_o press_n since_o mr._n dodwel_n send_v i_o his_o letter_n that_o require_v it_o i_o have_v not_o time_n to_o gather_v the_o printer_n errata_fw-la but_o must_v leave_v they_o to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o reader_n only_o for_o english_a prelacy_n before_o the_o first_o chapter_n and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n shall_v be_v the_o describe_v prelacy_n i_o will_v end_v with_o the_o two_o follow_a testimony_n one_o ad_fw-la rem_fw-la the_o other_o ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la the_o lord_n pity_v his_o ship_n that_o be_v endanger_v by_o the_o pilot_n october_n 14._o 1680_o richard_n baxter_n justin_n martyr_n apolog._n we_o have_v rather_o die_v for_o the_o confession_n of_o one_o faith_n then_o either_o lie_v or_o deceive_v they_o that_o examine_v we_o otherwise_o we_o may_v ready_o use_v that_o common_a say_n my_o tongue_n be_v swear_v my_o mind_n be_v unsworn_a vid._n rob._n abbot_n old_a way_n p._n 51._o thorndike_n of_o forbearance_n of_o penalty_n it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o talk_v of_o reformation_n in_o the_o church_n unto_o regular_a government_n without_o restore_v the_o liberty_n of_o choose_v bishop_n and_o the_o privilege_n of_o enjoy_v they_o to_o the_o synod_n clergy_n and_o people_n of_o each_o diocese_n so_o evident_a be_v the_o right_n of_o synod_n clergy_n and_o people_n in_o the_o make_n of_o this_o of_o who_o they_o consist_v and_o by_o who_o they_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v that_o i_o need_v make_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o the_o neglect_n of_o episcopacy_n than_o the_o neglect_n of_o it_o the_o content_n part_n i._o chap._n 1._o the_o reason_n of_o this_o write_n chap._n 2._o the_o english_a diocesane_n prelacy_n and_o church_n government_n true_o describe_v that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v what_o it_o be_v which_o we_o dissent_v from_o chap._n 3._o our_o judgement_n if_o the_o history_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n government_n and_o of_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o diocesane_n prelacy_n chap._n 4._o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o non_fw-fr conformist_n now_o silence_v who_o 1660_o address_v themselves_o to_o king_n charles_n ii_o for_o the_o matter_n in_o church-government_n what_o they_o then_o offer_v and_o what_o those_o of_o the_o authers_n mind_n now_o hold_v as_o to_o the_o right_n of_o what_o be_v before_o but_o historical_o relate_v chap._n 5._o concern_v the_o several_a writer_n on_o this_o controversy_n wherein_o there_o be_v sufficient_a animadversion_n on_o some_o and_o sufficient_a confutation_n of_o the_o chief_a who_o have_v write_v for_o the_o prelacy_n which_o we_o dissent_v from_o as_o 1._o whitgift_n 2._o faravia_n 3._o bilson_n 4._o hooker_n 5._o bishop_n downams_n defence_n 6._o bishop_n hall_n 7._o petavius_n 8._o bish_n andrews_n 9_o bish_n usher_n in_o some_o passage_n 10._o of_o the_o dispute_n at_o the_o isle_n of_o wight_n 11._o john_n forbes_n 12._o the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o bohemian_a discipline_n consent_v to_o 13._o grotius_n applaud_v 14._o j._n d._n 15._o m_o a._n de_fw-fr dom._n spalatensis_n consider_v and_o much_o of_o he_o approve_v 16._o doctor_n hammond_n answer_v viz._n his_o annotation_n his_o dissertat_fw-la against_o blondel_n etc._n etc._n who_o have_v write_v against_o prelacy_n chap._n 6._o it_o be_v not_o please_v to_o god_n that_o city_n only_o shall_v have_v bishop_n and_o church_n with_o the_o territory_n chap._n 7._o the_o definition_n and_o reason_n of_o a_o diocesan_n church_n consider_v and_o confute_v chap._n 8._o whether_o the_o infidel_n territory_n or_o citizen_n be_v part_n of_o a_o diocesane_a church_n chap._n 9_o whether_o convert_v a_o diocese_n give_v right_a to_o their_o converter_n to_o be_v their_o bishop_n and_o ruler_n chap._n 10._o that_o a_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o first_o or_o low_a order_n must_v consist_v of_o neighbour_n christian_n associate_v for_o personal_a communion_n in_o local_a presence_n in_o holy_a worship_n and_o conversation_n and_o not_o of_o stranger_n so_o remote_a as_o have_v only_o a_o internal_a heart_n communion_n or_o a_o external_a communion_n by_o the_o mediation_n of_o other_o chap._n 11._o that_o a_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n
read_v the_o whole_a book_n of_o canon_n and_o the_o visitation_n article_n may_v see_v they_o be_v too_o many_o for_o i_o to_o recite_v ibid._n beside_o a_o multitude_n of_o case_n about_o marriage_n to_o be_v contract_v dissolve_v separation_n and_o testament_n and_o the_o good_n of_o intestate_a person_n ibid._n priest_n deacon_n and_o layman_n be_v judge_v in_o these_o court_n the_o final_a constrain_a penalty_n be_v excommunication_n or_o before_o that_o suspension_n and_o other_o degree_n of_o church_n punishment_n before_o mention_v as_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n the_o suppose_a offender_n be_v no_o otherwise_o deal_v with_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o true_a repentance_n than_o as_o in_o civil_a court_n by_o other_o lay-judge_n they_o that_o appear_v not_o and_o they_o that_o pay_v not_o the_o fee_n of_o the_o court_n and_o officer_n be_v excommunicate_a and_o they_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o order_n of_o the_o court._n in_o excommunication_n and_o absolution_n the_o lay-chancellor_n be_v judge_n but_o he_o write_v the_o decree_n in_o the_o bishop_n name_n and_o at_o least_o sometime_o pro_fw-la formâ_fw-la some_o priest_n or_o other_o be_v procure_v to_o be_v present_a no_o bishop_n to_o utter_v the_o sentence_n which_o the_o lay_v judge_n decree_v this_o sentence_n be_v send_v by_o the_o chancellor_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o parish_n where_o the_o offender_n live_v who_o must_v publish_v it_o in_o the_o church_n open_o as_o the_o crier_n do_v the_o king_n proclamation_n but_o if_o it_o be_v the_o minister_n himself_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v another_o minister_n read_v it_o the_o whole_a process_n of_o their_o judicial_a trial_n sentence_n and_o execution_n you_o may_v see_v in_o cosin_n tab._n 9_o 10._o beside_o the_o chancellor_n court_n call_v the_o bishop_n the_o archdeacon_n have_v certain_a inferior_a court_n where_o they_o inquire_v after_o fault_n and_o return_v the_o great_a one_o to_o the_o bishop_n court_n 2._o and_o they_o induct_v or_o give_v possession_n of_o benefice_n as_o for_o the_o parish_n priest_n or_o minister_n ordinary_a parish_n have_v but_o one_o to_o each_o but_o great_a parish_n can_v be_v serve_v as_o they_o call_v it_o without_o a_o curate_n and_o each_o chapel_n have_v a_o curate_n but_o all_o under_o one_o that_o have_v the_o sole_a possession_n of_o the_o benefice_n whether_o he_o be_v parson_n or_o vicar_n these_o priest_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o bishop_n some_o one_o two_o or_o three_o presbyter_n if_o present_v also_o impose_v hand_n they_o be_v choose_v to_o the_o church_n and_o benefice_n by_o the_o patron_n who_o present_v they_o to_o the_o bishop_n who_o give_v they_o institution_n for_o title_n and_o induction_n for_o possession_n when_o he_o be_v ordain_v institute_v and_o induct_v he_o must_v not_o preach_v to_o his_o people_n till_o he_o have_v get_v a_o uniform_a licence_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o diocese_n no_o though_o he_o be_v before_o license_v in_o another_o diocese_n nor_o must_v he_o preach_v or_o officiate_v or_o have_v any_o benefice_n or_o church_n till_o he_o have_v subscribe_v supreme_a and_o do_v as_o be_v express_v in_o the_o act_n of_o uniformity_n and_o he_o must_v declare_v his_o assent_n and_o consent_v to_o all_o thing_n contain_v in_o and_o prescribe_v by_o three_o book_n the_o liturgy_n the_o book_n of_o ordination_n and_o the_o article_n and_o he_o must_v swear_v obedience_n to_o his_o bishop_n his_o office_n be_v when_o after_o license_v to_o preach_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la and_o many_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o homily_n to_o read_v the_o liturgy_n or_o prayer_n to_o give_v notice_n of_o holiday_n and_o fasting-day_n to_o baptise_v all_o child_n without_o exception_n that_o be_v offer_v he_o by_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n the_o parent_n not_o covenant_v for_o they_o but_o other_o to_o marry_o person_n to_o church_n woman_n after_o child_n bear_v to_o hear_v child_n in_o church_n say_v the_o catechism_n that_o be_v in_o the_o liturgy_n but_o many_o have_v be_v forbid_v by_o the_o bishop_n to_o expound_v it_o or_o tell_v the_o child_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n which_o they_o say_v by_o rote_n to_o celebrate_v and_o give_v the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o parishioner_n to_o visit_v the_o sick_a and_o absolve_v they_o if_o they_o say_v they_o repent_v to_o bury_v the_o dead_a affirm_v of_o they_o all_o that_o god_n in_o mercy_n have_v take_v their_o soul_n as_o our_o dear_a brethren_n to_o himself_o except_v only_o 1._o those_o that_o die_v unbaptise_v though_o child_n of_o prince_n or_o godly_a parent_n 2._o those_o that_o be_v excommunicate_a usual_o such_o as_o dare_v not_o conform_v to_o they_o 3._o and_o those_o that_o kill_v themselves_o though_o in_o a_o frenzy_n to_o use_v the_o cross_n surplice_n and_o other_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o join_v with_o the_o churchwarden_n if_o they_o please_v in_o present_v such_o to_o the_o bishop_n court_n as_o break_v their_o law_n and_o if_o he_o deny_v any_o notorious_a offender_n the_o sacrament_n he_o must_v become_v his_o accuser_n before_o the_o chancellor_n or_o bishop_n court_n 13._o this_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o parish_n priest_n where_o you_o must_v note_v 1._o in_o general_a that_o he_o have_v no_o judicial_a administration_n in_o the_o church_n 11._o they_o ordinary_o say_v that_o he_o have_v no_o jurisdiction_n but_o mere_a priestly_a order_n as_o if_o they_o know_v not_o that_o priestly_a order_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o sacred_a office_n and_o that_o that_o office_n be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o essential_o contain_v the_o power_n of_o guide_v the_o flock_n in_o teach_v worship_n and_o discipline_n under_o christ_n the_o chief_a prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n civil_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o church_n be_v the_o king_n and_o spiritual_a be_v part_n of_o the_o priestly_a office_n or_o order_n as_o to_o the_o subject_a people_n to_o be_v govern_v 2._o particular_o note_n 1._o that_o the_o minister_n have_v in_o england_n no_o power_n to_o judge_n who_o to_o baptise_v and_o who_o not_o but_o must_v baptise_v all_o that_o be_v offer_v though_o the_o child_n of_o jew_n infidel_n turk_n apostate_n 2._o that_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o hinder_v the_o admission_n of_o any_o so_o baptize_v into_o the_o state_n of_o adult_n member_n by_o the_o bishop_n confirmation_n for_o though_o it_o be_v say_v child_n shall_v bring_v his_o certificate_n that_o they_o can_v say_v the_o catechism_n yet_o 1._o those_o child_n may_v go_v without_o it_o and_o do_v ordinary_o when_o i_o be_v confirm_v myself_o none_o be_v require_v nor_o do_v i_o ever_o see_v any_o give_v 2._o and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o poor_a child_n seldom_o understand_v any_o thing_n that_o they_o say_v or_o much_o 3._o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o multitude_n in_o our_o church_n that_o ever_o seek_v or_o mind_v such_o confirmation_n because_o of_o its_o abuse_n 3._o that_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o hinder_v any_o confirm_v or_o adult_a person_n from_o the_o sacrament_n on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o gross_a ignorance_n or_o infidelity_n when_o multitude_n among_o we_o know_v not_o what_o the_o sacrament_n be_v nor_o know_v the_o essential_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n 4._o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o convent_n any_o open_a offender_n before_o he_o to_o call_v he_o to_o repentance_n they_o may_v choose_v to_o come_v to_o he_o or_o to_o open_v their_o door_n to_o he_o or_o speak_v to_o he_o if_o he_o come_v to_o they_o 5._o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o call_v they_o to_o repentance_n open_o before_o the_o church_n or_o pray_v by_o name_n for_o their_o repentance_n or_o admonish_v they_o 6._o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o judge_v any_o person_n to_o be_v excommunicate_a 7._o nor_o to_o absolve_v any_o that_o be_v penitent_a after_o excommunication_n but_o only_o to_o read_v the_o lay-chancellour_n sentence_n send_v he_o in_o the_o bishop_n name_n 8._o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o forbear_v give_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o any_o one_o how_o notorious_a a_o offender_n soever_o unless_o he_o will_v prosecute_v he_o at_o the_o bishop_n court_n nor_o then_o but_o for_o once_o so_o that_o if_o he_o pay_v his_o fee_n and_o be_v absolve_v there_o though_o the_o minister_n know_v he_o to_o be_v never_o so_o bad_a he_o must_v give_v the_o sacrament_n the_o next_o time_n and_o the_o prosecution_n be_v so_o odious_a and_o fruitless_a that_o i_o never_o know_v any_o do_v it_o except_o against_o the_o nonconformist_n 9_o he_o that_o see_v never_o so_o great_a sign_n of_o impenitency_n in_o any_o man_n that_o be_v sick_a or_o will_v but_o say_v that_o he_o be_v sick_a have_v no_o power_n to_o deny_v he_o private_a absolution_n and_o the_o sacrament_n if_o he_o do_v but_o say_v i_o repent_v 10._o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o
be_v but_o as_o if_o every_o corporation_n or_o market-town_n in_o england_n have_v a_o bishop_n who_o rule_v also_o the_o adjacent_a village_n for_o though_o when_o they_o begin_v to_o swell_v it_o be_v once_o decree_v by_o one_o council_n that_o village_n and_o every_o small_a city_n shall_v not_o have_v a_o bishop_n lest_o the_o name_n of_o a_o bishop_n shall_v grow_v vile_a or_o cheap_a yet_o this_o be_v but_o with_o this_o addition_n those_o village_n or_o small_a city_n where_o there_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a number_n of_o christian_n whereas_o gregory_n at_o neocesarea_n think_v seventeen_o a_o sufficient_a number_n to_o have_v a_o bishop_n and_o the_o canon_n that_o every_o city_n shall_v have_v a_o bishop_n remain_v still_o in_o force_n 45._o yet_o be_v it_o for_o about_o 440_o year_n so_o far_o from_o these_o great_a bishop_n to_o usurp_v the_o sword_n or_o any_o coercive_a or_o coactive_a power_n on_o man_n body_n or_o estate_n that_o they_o unanimous_o hold_v that_o the_o magistrate_n himself_o be_v not_o to_o punish_v man_n body_n for_o heresy_n or_o a_o false_a religion_n till_o at_o last_o the_o bloody_a violence_n of_o the_o circumcellian_a donatist_n do_v cause_n augustine_n in_o this_o to_o change_v his_o mind_n and_o think_v they_o meet_v for_o the_o magistrate_n coercion_n 46._o when_o bishop_n grow_v carnal_a and_o ungodly_a and_o more_o regard_v the_o keep_n up_o their_o power_n party_n and_o opinion_n than_o charity_n they_o beganto_n distrust_v the_o spiritual_a weapon_n of_o their_o warfare_n and_o instead_o of_o true_a vigilancy_n against_o error_n and_o confutation_n of_o they_o by_o clear_a reason_n and_o a_o holy_a life_n they_o flee_v to_o the_o ruler_n to_o do_v it_o by_o the_o sword_n but_o though_o ithacius_n and_o idacius_n with_o their_o synod_n of_o bishop_n excite_a maximus_n to_o take_v this_o baron_n course_n against_o the_o priscilianist_n yet_o not_o only_a st._n martin_n do_v therefore_o to_o the_o death_n avoid_v their_o synod_n and_o communion_n and_o petition_v the_o emperor_n for_o the_o heretic_n peace_n but_o even_o st._n ambrose_n also_o at_o milan_n will_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o those_o bishop_n that_o have_v do_v this_o thing_n 47._o about_o the_o year_n 430_o or_o after_o cyril_n at_o alexandria_n do_v lead_v the_o way_n and_o actual_o use_v the_o sword_n against_o the_o life_n estate_n and_o liberty_n of_o offender_n a_o example_n which_o other_o quick_o follow_v and_o easy_o do_v he_o step_v from_o the_o great_a judicial_a power_n before_o describe_v to_o a_o force_a power_n the_o preparation_n be_v so_o great_a and_o the_o emperor_n so_o ready_a to_o exalt_v they_o and_o the_o people_n of_o alexandria_n so_o turbulent_a and_o incline_v by_o pride_n and_o passion_n to_o such_o way_n 48._o as_o the_o prelacy_n thus_o swell_v so_o the_o church_n grow_v sudden_o more_o corrupt_v with_o all_o manner_n of_o vice_n the_o bishop_n begin_v with_o sorrow_n to_o confess_v unto_o the_o heretic_n that_o the_o great_a number_n in_o the_o church_n be_v naught_o when_o they_o shall_v choose_v their_o bishop_n they_o can_v seldom_o agree_v but_o frequent_o instead_o of_o holy_a peaceable_a vote_n do_v turn_v to_o devilish_a rage_n and_o bloodshed_n and_o cover_v the_o street_n and_o church-floor_n with_o the_o carcase_n of_o the_o slay_v especial_o in_o the_o case_n of_o damasus_n and_o other_o at_o rome_n and_o oft_o at_o alexandria_n and_o constantinople_n frequent_o they_o fall_v into_o feud_n and_o fight_v it_o out_o and_o murder_a people_n by_o multitude_n even_o the_o strict_a holy_a monk_n of_o the_o egyptian_a desert_n be_v as_o forward_o as_o other_o to_o fight_v bloodshed_n and_o sedition_n even_o in_o their_o ignorance_n for_o such_o a_o paltry_a and_o sottish_a a_o opinion_n as_o that_o of_o the_o anthropomorphites_n as_o that_o god_n have_v the_o shape_n and_o part_n of_o a_o man_n so_o that_o they_o force_v that_o deceitful_a treacherous_a bishop_n theophilus_n alexandr_n to_o flatter_v they_o and_o curse_v the_o book_n of_o origen_n not_o for_o his_o error_n but_o for_o the_o opposite_a truth_n and_o to_o take_v on_o he_o to_o hold_v as_o they_o do_v when_o god_n try_v they_o with_o a_o julian_n who_o do_v persecute_v they_o very_o little_a they_o reproach_v he_o to_o his_o face_n and_o try_v his_o patience_n as_o well_o as_o he_o do_v they_o the_o antiochian_o scornful_o 15._o bid_v he_o shave_v his_o beard_n and_o make_v halter_n of_o it_o in_o a_o word_n when_o constantine_n have_v bring_v the_o world_n into_o the_o church_n the_o church_n grow_v quick_o too_o like_o the_o world_n 49._o but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o people_n only_o but_o the_o pastor_n both_o prelate_n and_o presbyter_n that_o grow_v licentious_a wicked_a proud_a contentious_a turbulent_a and_o the_o shame_n of_o their_o order_n and_o profession_n and_o the_o great_a disturber_n and_o divider_n of_o the_o church_n except_o here_o and_o there_o a_o ambrose_n a_o augustine_n a_o chrysostome_n a_o basil_n a_o gregory_n a_o atticus_n a_o proclus_n and_o a_o few_o such_o that_o so_o shine_v among_o a_o darken_a degenerate_a clergy_n as_o to_o be_v single_v out_o for_o saint_n abundance_n get_v these_o great_a and_o tempt_a prelacy_n by_o simony_n and_o more_o by_o make_v friend_n to_o courtier_n and_o not_o a_o few_o by_o carnal_a compliance_n with_o the_o people_n what_o abundance_n of_o most_o sharp_a epistle_n do_v isidore_n pelusiota_n write_v to_o eusebius_n the_o bishop_n and_o to_o sosimus_n martianus_n eustathius_n etc._n etc._n of_o all_o their_o horrible_a wicked_a life_n and_o yet_o can_v never_o procure_v their_o reformation_n what_o abundance_n of_o epistle_n do_v he_o write_v against_o they_o to_o other_o bishop_n and_o yet_o can_v not_o procure_v their_o correction_n or_o removal_n what_o a_o sad_a character_n do_v sulpitius_n severus_n give_v of_o the_o bishop_n that_o prosecute_v the_o priscilianist_n and_o in_o particular_a of_o their_o leader_n ithacius_n of_o his_o own_o knowledge_n what_o abundance_n of_o prelate_n be_v shameful_o stigmatise_v by_o socrates_n sozomen_n theodoret_n euagrius_n &_o c_o when_o a_o rebel_n rise_v up_o against_o his_o prince_n and_o get_v but_o the_o strong_a party_n and_o possession_n how_o quick_o do_v they_o flatter_v he_o and_o own_v he_o i_o find_v but_o one_o bishop_n beside_o st._n martin_n in_o all_o france_n and_o that_o part_n of_o germany_n that_o disowned_a maximus_n that_o murder_v gratian_n the_o rest_n applaud_v he_o for_o their_o own_o end_n nor_o in_o that_o part_n of_o italy_n i_o find_v not_o any_o beside_o ambrose_n and_o one_o hyginus_n that_o disown_v he_o not_o that_o i_o think_v it_o my_o part_n to_o condemn_v all_o the_o holy_a bishop_n who_o profess_a subjection_n to_o usurper_n in_o possession_n even_o holy_a ambrose_n can_v write_v to_o the_o odious_a tyrant_n eugenius_n clementissimo_fw-la imperatori_fw-la eugenio_n conclude_a nam_fw-la cum_fw-la privato_fw-la detulerim_n cord_n intimo_fw-la quomodo_fw-la non_fw-la deferrem_fw-la imperatori_fw-la when_o i_o honour_v thou_o a_o private_a man_n from_o the_o bottom_n of_o my_o heart_n how_o can_v i_o but_o honour_v thou_o be_v emperor_n and_o how_o far_o have_v the_o roman_a bishop_n go_v in_o this_o even_o to_o phocas_n and_o such_o as_o he_o when_o good_a gregory_n nazianz._n be_v choose_v and_o settle_a bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o love_v and_o honour_v by_o a_o good_a emperor_n yet_o be_v he_o reject_v though_o he_o easy_o yield_v even_o by_o the_o synod_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o arrogancy_n of_o their_o mind_n because_o that_o he_o come_v not_o in_o by_o they_o with_o what_o pride_n what_o falsehood_n what_o turbulence_n do_v theophilus_n alexand._n carry_v on_o all_o his_o business_n with_o the_o monk_n and_o for_o the_o depose_n of_o chrysostome_n and_o how_o arrogant_o and_o turbulent_o do_v epiphanius_n join_v with_o he_o and_o even_o hierome_n make_v himself_o partaker_n and_o how_o easy_o do_v he_o get_v a_o synod_n even_o where_o chrysostome_n live_v to_o second_v they_o such_o lamentable_a instance_n be_v more_o easy_a than_o pleasant_a to_o be_v cite_v and_o that_o episcopacy_n which_o be_v set_v up_o to_o prevent_v heresy_n and_o division_n do_v afford_v the_o head_n of_o most_o of_o the_o heresy_n and_o division_n that_o befall_v the_o church_n how_o few_o of_o all_o the_o heresy_n mention_v by_o epiphanius_n after_o that_o prelacy_n be_v in_o force_n be_v not_o head_v and_o carry_v on_o by_o prelate_n and_o when_o the_o arian_n heresy_n spring_v up_o by_o a_o presbyter_n the_o prelate_n so_o numerous_o receive_v it_o that_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o far_o great_a part_n if_o not_o the_o audio_fw-la main_a body_n of_o the_o imperial_a church_n witness_v the_o pervert_n of_o many_o emperor_n the_o many_o council_n at_o sirmium_n ariminum_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o many_o new_a creed_n which_o socrates_n and_o hilary_n
grant_v that_o it_o be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o bishop_n office_n to_o judge_n excommunicate_a or_o absolve_v but_o only_o to_o rule_v the_o action_n by_o give_v another_o power_n to_o do_v it_o ans_fw-fr 1._o if_o so_o then_o nothing_o but_o commission_v other_o be_v the_o proper_a work_n of_o the_o episcopal_a order_n and_o then_o any_o presbyter_n may_v in_o foro_fw-la interno_fw-la vel_fw-la externo_fw-la ordinary_o exercise_v the_o whole_a power_n of_o the_o key_n upon_o the_o flock_n he_o may_v excommunicate_v and_o absolve_v public_o as_o a_o act_n common_a to_o his_o office_n with_o the_o bishop_n if_o it_o please_v the_o bishop_n to_o give_v he_o power_n which_o he_o may_v do_v without_o make_v he_o a_o bishop_n and_o if_o so_o i_o inquire_v whether_o god_n be_v not_o the_o maker_n of_o the_o presbyter_n office_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n and_o whether_o god_n only_o describe_v it_o give_v not_o all_o the_o power_n by_o way_n of_o law_n charter_n or_o institution_n and_o the_o bishop_n give_v it_o not_o only_o by_o way_n of_o ministerial_a solemnisation_n and_o investiture_n and_o if_o so_o whether_o he_o that_o be_v due_o call_v to_o the_o pastoral_n office_n which_o god_n only_o make_v and_o describe_v wust_z not_o in_o season_n do_v the_o work_n of_o that_o office_n whether_o man_n commission_n he_o or_o not_o or_o whether_o at_o least_o he_o any_o more_o need_v the_o bishop_n commission_n for_o church_n government_n excommunication_n and_o absolution_n than_o for_o preach_v and_o celebrate_v the_o lord_n supper_n see_v both_o be_v now_o thus_o confess_v act_n common_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o presbyter_n and_o the_o bishop_n i_o think_v all_o this_o be_v past_a contradiction_n and_o i_o ask_v then_o whether_o that_o all_o give_v of_o power_n to_o another_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o bishop_n order_n if_o yea_o than_o a_o minister_n can_v give_v his_o clerk_n power_n to_o choose_v the_o psalm_n or_o tune_n etc._n etc._n if_o not_o then_o may_v not_o a_o bishop_n if_o he_o please_v also_o give_v power_n to_o the_o presbyter_n to_o ordain_v and_o to_o give_v other_o man_n power_n for_o if_o it_o be_v his_o proper_a work_n only_o to_o give_v power_n to_o other_o to_o do_v all_o the_o sacred_a act_n of_o office_n he_o may_v give_v other_o power_n to_o ordain_v and_o if_o so_o then_o ordination_n will_v be_v like_o preach_v sacrament_n and_o discipline_n which_o be_v none_o of_o they_o proper_a to_o the_o bishop_n order_n and_o be_v not_o church_n discipline_n the_o exercise_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n if_o then_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n may_v be_v exercise_v by_o the_o presbyter_n when_o ever_o the_o bishop_n please_v it_o seem_v it_o be_v common_a to_o they_o with_o he_o as_o well_o as_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o belong_v not_o to_o a_o bishop_n as_o a_o bishop_n but_o as_o a_o presbyter_n and_o if_o in_o my_o dispute_n of_o ordination_n 2._o i_o have_v full_o prove_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v give_v by_o christ_n so_o far_o immediate_o as_o that_o it_o pass_v not_o through_o the_o hand_n of_o elector_n or_o ordainer_n to_o the_o receiver_n but_o be_v give_v by_o the_o mere_a instrumentality_n of_o the_o law_n or_o institution_n and_o that_o the_o elector_n and_o ordainer_n do_v no_o more_o than_o determine_v of_o the_o qualify_a person_n that_o receive_v it_o and_o public_o invest_v he_o or_o ministerial_o solemnize_v his_o possession_n as_o the_o burgess_n choose_v and_o the_o steward_n or_o recorder_n invest_v the_o major_a of_o a_o corporation_n who_o power_n flow_v immediate_o from_o the_o charter_n grant_v by_o the_o king_n than_o all_o this_o controversy_n be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o be_v full_o prove_v and_o if_o command_v another_o to_o do_v a_o office_n work_v be_v all_o that_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o bishop_n i_o ask_v whether_o any_o thing_n there_o be_v proper_a to_o he_o and_o so_o whether_o we_o must_v have_v such_o a_o office_n for_o may_v not_o the_o king_n command_v the_o minister_n to_o do_v all_o the_o work_n which_o belong_v to_o his_o function_n may_v he_o not_o appoint_v magistrate_n and_o make_v law_n to_o command_v it_o may_v he_o not_o punish_v those_o that_o do_v it_o not_o be_v he_o not_o custos_fw-la utriusque_fw-la tabulae_fw-la and_o must_v he_o not_o corect_v maladministration_n in_o minister_n and_o drive_v they_o to_o do_v their_o duty_n no_o doubt_v he_o may_v obj._n but_o he_o do_v not_o ordain_v minister_n though_o he_o command_v they_o to_o do_v their_o duty_n when_o ordain_v ans_fw-fr 1._o our_o present_a question_n be_v not_o about_o ordination_n but_o command_a man_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n by_o discipline_n or_o full_o to_o rule_v by_o the_o key_n the_o people_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n if_o this_o so_o far_o belong_v to_o the_o presbyter_n office_n that_o he_o may_v do_v it_o by_o the_o bishop_n licence_n let_v he_o that_o can_v tell_v i_o why_o he_o may_v not_o do_v it_o by_o the_o king_n licence_n and_o then_o as_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v of_o old_a exceptâ_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la nothing_o but_o ordination_n only_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o bishop_n office_n and_o that_o this_o be_v not_o proper_a neither_o 1._o this_o objection_n itself_o do_v intimate_v see_v the_o bishop_n may_v give_v another_o power_n to_o ordain_v and_o then_o why_o may_v not_o the_o king_n 2._o many_o of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v that_o the_o pope_n say_v some_o or_o prelate_n say_v other_o may_v empower_v a_o abbot_n or_o presbyter_n to_o ordain_v of_o which_o see_v that_o unanswerable_a book_n of_o voetius_fw-la de_fw-la desperata_fw-la causa_fw-la papatus_fw-la against_o jansenius_n for_o presbyter_n ordination_n 3._o and_o our_o church_n of_o england_n cause_v presbyter_n to_o impose_v hand_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o bishop_n downam_n aforecited_a be_v angry_a with_o his_o answerer_n for_o suppose_v that_o he_o plead_v for_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n in_o the_o bishop_n when_o he_o speak_v but_o for_o a_o chief_a power_n and_o if_o nothing_o but_o a_o chief_a power_n in_o ordain_v be_v proper_a to_o a_o bishop_n why_o then_o be_v the_o church_n so_o confound_v and_o beggar_a and_o alter_v by_o a_o contrary_a practice_n and_o why_o be_v a_o new_a office_n of_o bishop_n set_v up_o in_o the_o world_n who_o work_n be_v to_o hinder_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n from_o their_o officwork_n under_o pretence_n of_o a_o power_n of_o licens_v they_o to_o it_o when_o god_n licence_v they_o to_o the_o work_n when_o he_o call_v they_o to_o that_o office_n which_o essenti_fw-la ally_n consist_v in_o a_o power_n and_o obligation_n to_o do_v it_o when_o they_o have_v opportunity_n moreover_o my_o lord_n bacon_n in_o his_o consideration_n as_o have_v well_o manifest_v if_o impartial_a wise_a man_n can_v have_v be_v hear_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v a_o function_n consist_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o personal_a skill_n or_o ability_n and_o therefore_o must_v be_v do_v by_o he_o that_o have_v they_o and_o not_o commit_v to_o another_o as_o the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n or_o lawyer_n of_o a_o physician_n of_o a_o tutor_n etc._n etc._n no_o man_n choose_v a_o tutor_n or_o physician_n mere_o to_o send_v another_o to_o he_o for_o his_o tutor_n or_o physician_n but_o ●●_o do_v the_o work_v himself_o it_o be_v not_o like_o the_o place_n of_o a_o king_n who_o right_a depend_v not_o on_o his_o part_n or_o skill_n because_o he_o may_v govern_v by_o other_o that_o be_v able_a and_o grotius_n who_o one_o will_v think_v by_o their_o respect_n to_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v regard_v by_o they_o true_o say_v de_fw-fr imperio_fw-la sum_fw-la potest_fw-la pag._n 290_o nam_fw-la illud_fw-la quod_fw-la quis_fw-la per_fw-la alium_fw-la facit_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la facere_fw-la videtur_fw-la ad_fw-la eas_fw-la tantum_fw-la pertinet_fw-la actiones_fw-la quarum_fw-la causa_fw-la efficiens_fw-la proxima_fw-la a_o jure_fw-la indefinita_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v for_o this_o say_n that_o who_o a_o man_n do_v by_o another_o he_o seem_v to_o do_v by_o himself_o belong_v only_o to_o those_o action_n which_o near_o efficient_a cause_n be_v not_o define_v by_o the_o law_n but_o sure_o when_o god_n make_v the_o pastoral_a office_n he_o mean_v that_o the_o person_n call_v to_o it_o shall_v do_v the_o work_n and_o not_o only_o appoint_v other_o man_n to_o do_v it_o and_o i_o will_v know_v whether_o the_o work_n of_o a_o presbyter_n as_o to_o consecrae_fw-la and_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n &c_n &c_n may_v be_v do_v per_fw-la alium_fw-la by_o one_o that_o be_v no_o presbyter_n if_o not_o as_o all_o say_v not_o than_o i_o ask_v whether_o the_o bishop_n work_n or_o the_o presbyter_n be_v the_o more_o sacred_a if_o the_o presbyter_n
and_o according_a to_o that_o word_n to_o declare_v they_o impenitency_n open_o characterize_n they_o to_o be_v person_n unmeet_a for_o christian_a communion_n and_o such_o as_o till_o they_o repent_v be_v under_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o must_v expect_v his_o dreadful_a judgement_n and_o to_o command_v the_o church_n in_o christ_n name_n to_o withdraw_v from_o the_o impenitent_a person_n and_o to_o have_v no_o communion_n with_o he_o and_o all_o this_o be_v but_o the_o application_n of_o god_n word_n to_o his_o conscience_n and_o the_o church_n if_o his_o sear_a conscience_n deride_v it_o all_o we_o can_v do_v no_o more_o if_o he_o will_v forcible_o intrude_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n against_o their_o will_n it_o be_v like_a one_o break_v into_o my_o house_n the_o magistrate_n must_v restrain_v he_o as_o a_o violater_n of_o the_o peace_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o church_n liberty_n if_o the_o magistrate_n will_v not_o the_o church_n most_o remove_v from_o he_o if_o they_o can_v they_o must_v pronounce_v he_o moral_o absent_a as_o a_o forcible_a intruder_n and_o none_o of_o their_o communion_n if_o the_o church_n will_v not_o obey_v the_o pastor_n sentence_n he_o have_v no_o instrument_n but_o the_o same_o word_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o it_o now_o all_o this_o be_v past_o denial_n let_v we_o come_v more_o particular_o to_o inquire_v in_o all_o this_o what_o part_n there_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o bishop_n office_n as_o such_o 1._o be_v it_o the_o make_n of_o church_n law_n or_o canon_n about_o what_o 1._o either_o these_o canon_n be_v but_o the_o command_v of_o that_o which_o god_n law_n make_v a_o duty_n before_o or_o of_o somewhat_o new_o make_v a_o duty_n by_o themselves_o 2._o either_o they_o be_v law_n or_o command_n to_o the_o laity_n only_o or_o to_o the_o presbyter_n or_o to_o the_o particular_a bishop_n or_o all_o 1._o if_o they_o do_v but_o urge_v the_o perform_n of_o some_o duty_n already_o make_v such_o by_o god_n in_o scripture_n or_o nature_n who_o ever_o doubt_v but_o presbyter_n may_v do_v that_o even_o to_o teach_v and_o charge_v the_o people_n from_o god_n to_o obey_v his_o law_n and_o note_v that_o god_n daily_o make_v new_a duty_n by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n even_o providential_o alter_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n and_o so_o he_o make_v this_o or_o that_o to_o become_v decent_a and_o orderly_a and_o so_o a_o duty_n and_o make_v it_o my_o duty_n to_o speak_v this_o or_o that_o word_n to_o this_o or_o that_o person_n or_o to_o do_v this_o or_o that_o particular_a good_a work_n even_o by_o vary_a occasion_n accident_n and_o circumstance_n of_o thing_n 2._o but_o if_o these_o canon_n make_v new_a duty_n which_o god_n have_v not_o make_v 1._o if_o it_o be_v to_o the_o laity_n the_o presbyter_n may_v do_v the_o like_a for_o they_o be_v guide_n also_o of_o the_o laity_n unless_o they_o be_v forbid_v by_o a_o superior_a power_n if_o it_o be_v only_o to_o the_o presbyter_n that_o will_v not_o reach_v our_o present_a case_n as_o shall_v be_v further_o show_v afterward_o 3._o if_o it_o be_v to_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o they_o can_v be_v law_n but_o mere_a agreement_n because_o one_o bishop_n be_v not_o the_o proper_a governor_n of_o another_o nor_o many_o of_o one_o nor_o the_o present_a in_o council_n of_o the_o absent_a as_o such_o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n it_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v note_v how_o much_o the_o diocesanes_n contradict_v themselves_o in_o this_o claim_n of_o government_n they_o say_v that_o they_o be_v of_o a_o distinct_a order_n and_o office_n from_o mere_a presbyter_n because_o they_o have_v power_n to_o govern_v they_o and_o yet_o they_o make_v 1._o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n to_o have_v as_o high_a a_o govern_v power_n over_o particular_a bishop_n of_o the_o same_o order_n 2._o and_o a_o archbishop_n to_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o bishop_n 3._o and_o a_o primate_n or_o patriarch_n to_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o arch-bishop_n and_o yet_o not_o to_o be_v of_o a_o distinct_a order_n or_o office_n but_o only_o of_o a_o distinct_a degree_n in_o the_o accidental_n of_o the_o same_o order_n if_o government_n prove_v a_o distinct_a order_n or_o office_n in_o one_o it_o will_v do_v so_o in_o the_o other_o and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o magistrate_n make_v all_o the_o same_o canon_n who_o rule_v they_o all_o but_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o these_o canon_n may_v be_v 1._o the_o bishop_n make_v canon_n how_o often_o synod_n or_o council_n shall_v be_v hold_v and_o when_o and_o where_o and_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v dissolve_v but_o 1._o may_v not_o the_o king_n do_v the_o same_o and_o can_v that_o be_v proper_a to_o bishop_n which_o the_o king_n may_v do_v yea_o which_o all_o emperor_n have_v former_o use_v 2._o and_o be_v not_o this_o cannon_n make_v to_o rule_v bishop_n themselves_o who_o be_v it_o but_o bishop_n or_o so_o much_o as_o they_o that_o you_o think_v shall_v be_v call_v unto_o council_n and_o be_v the_o bishop_n in_o council_n of_o another_o order_n than_o themselves_o out_o of_o council_n need_v we_o a_o office_n of_o bishop_n to_o rule_v bishop_n of_o the_o same_o office_n 2._o canon_n be_v make_v about_o temple_n building_n tithe_n glebe_n bell_n pulpit_n seat_n table_n cup_n font_n and_o other_o utensil_n and_o 1._o who_o doubt_v but_o the_o magistrate_n may_v do_v all_o this_o yea_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o regulate_v such_o thing_n as_o these_o 2._o and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o even_a bishop_n be_v under_o these_o canon_n also_o who_o be_v of_o the_o same_o order_n 3._o and_o that_o presbyter_n even_o in_o england_n be_v member_n of_o these_o synod_n and_o so_o make_v canon_n to_o rule_v the_o bishop_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v of_o a_o superior_a order_n to_o bishop_n by_o your_o reason_n 3._o canon_n be_v make_v for_o the_o regulate_v of_o minister_n attire_n in_o the_o church_n and_o out_o and_o for_o officiate_a garment_n as_o surplice_n etc._n etc._n and_o of_o these_o i_o say_v the_o same_o as_o of_o the_o former_a the_o king_n may_v do_v the_o same_o as_o bishop_n may_v do_v and_o bishop_n themselves_o be_v bind_v by_o they_o and_o presbyter_n make_v they_o which_o three_o thing_n prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o proper_a work_n of_o bishop_n as_o a_o distinct_a order_n from_o mere_a presbyter_n 4._o canon_n be_v make_v for_o worship_n ge●ures_v in_o what_o gesture_n to_o pray_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n to_o use_v the_o creed_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o same_o three_o answer_n serve_v to_o this_o also_o as_o to_o the_o case_n in_o hand_n 5._o canon_n be_v make_v for_o holiday_n public_a fast_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o lecture_n day_n and_o the_o same_o three_o consideration_n fall_v in_o here_o 6._o canon_n be_v make_v for_o the_o order_n officer_n fee_n and_o such_o like_a in_o bishop_n court_n and_o here_o all_o the_o same_o three_o thing_n fall_v in_o 1._o the_o king_n may_v do_v it_o 2._o it_o be_v bishop_n that_o be_v rule_v 3._o presbyter_n also_o make_v the_o canon_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la the_o proper_a work_n of_o a_o distinct_a order_n 7._o canon_n be_v make_v for_o the_o choice_n of_o what_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n shall_v be_v use_v in_o all_o the_o church_n and_o what_o version_n or_o metre_n of_o the_o sing_a psalm_n and_o of_o this_o also_o the_o three_o former_a thing_n hold_v true_a 8._o canon_n be_v make_v to_o impose_v a_o liturgy_n in_o what_o word_n minister_n shall_v speak_v to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o people_n and_o 1._o this_o also_o the_o king_n may_v do_v and_o do_v 2._o and_o it_o oblige_v bishop_n 3._o and_o presbyter_n make_v it_o 9_o canon_n be_v make_v against_o schismatic_n new_a discipline_n and_o constitution_n non-subscribers_a unlicensed_a preacher_n for_o the_o book_n of_o article_n of_o ordination_n for_o catechise_v preach_a marry_v bury_v christen_n and_o such_o like_a in_o all_o which_o each_o of_o the_o say_v three_o answer_n hold_v 10._o canon_n be_v make_v to_o keep_v parent_n from_o open_a covenant_v to_o god_n for_o their_o child_n in_o baptism_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v urge_v to_o be_v present_a that_o godfather_n do_v that_o office_n and_o not_o they_o as_o also_o that_o none_o be_v baptize_v without_o the_o transient_a image_n of_o a_o cross_n and_o such_o like_a whether_o this_o be_v well_o or_o ill_o do_v the_o three_o former_a answer_n all_o hold_n in_o this_o 11._o all_o the_o canon_n that_o be_v for_o the_o restraint_n of_o sin_n as_o neglect_v of_o church_n worship_n profane_v of_o it_o and_o other_o abuse_n have_v the_o same_o censure_n 12._o the_o circumstantiate_a canon_n how_o oft_o bishop_n shall_v confirm_v and_o who_o they_o shall_v
ordain_v and_o how_o oft_o and_o how_o oft_o the_o common_a prayer_n be_v read_v the_o surplice_n wear_v the_o sacrament_n administer_v in_o what_o place_n what_o register_n to_o be_v keep_v what_o order_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la with_o abundance_n the_o like_a have_v all_o the_o foresay_a answer_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v no_o proper_a work_n of_o a_o distinct_a order_n there_o remain_v therefore_o but_o the_o determination_n of_o present_a circumstance_n which_o be_v part_n of_o the_o minister_n proper_a work_n or_o the_o lecturer_n or_o clerk_n at_o least_o as_o 1._o what_o text_n to_o preach_v on_o to_o day_n how_o to_o expound_v it_o and_o apply_v it_o in_o what_o method_n to_o preach_v what_o word_n to_o use_v how_o long_o to_o preach_v 2._o in_o what_o method_n word_n and_o length_n to_o pray_v where_o free_a prayer_n be_v allow_v 3._o what_o particular_a psalm_n to_o sing_v and_o in_o what_o tune_n 4._o on_o what_o particular_a day_n to_o administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n beside_o the_o great_a day_n easter_n whitsuntide_n etc._n etc._n at_o what_o hour_n to_o go_v to_o church_n and_o when_o to_o end_v 5._o what_o particular_a sick_a person_n to_o visit_v and_o when_o and_o what_o sinner_n to_o reprove_v or_o admonish_v personal_o and_o who_o be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o true_a penitent_a and_o absolve_v in_o foro_fw-la poenitentiali_fw-la or_o private_o as_o they_o distinguish_v all_o these_o be_v either_o the_o personal_a work_n of_o he_o that_o officiate_v as_o chew_v his_o meat_n of_o a_o man_n before_o he_o swallow_v it_o and_o dege_v it_o or_o as_o choose_v his_o medicament_n be_v to_o the_o physician_n and_o belong_v to_o his_o call_n which_o none_o shall_v hinder_v he_o in_o of_o which_o i_o make_v no_o question_n and_o if_o so_o it_o be_v not_o the_o proper_a work_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o else_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o this_o liberty_n be_v take_v from_o he_o and_o that_o other_o man_n choose_v for_o he_o every_o day_n his_o text_n his_o method_n his_o word_n his_o tune_n his_o hour_n and_o the_o rest_n and_o if_o so_o when_o this_o also_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o canon_n no_o doubt_n but_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n and_o presbyter_n in_o convocation_n will_v all_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o it_o and_o perhaps_o the_o bishop_n be_v under_o the_o canon_n as_o well_o as_o other_o yet_o than_o we_o have_v not_o find_v out_o a_o bishop_n proper_a work_n unless_o it_o be_v when_o he_o be_v present_a in_o the_o same_o assembly_n to_o govern_v the_o work_n in_o all_o these_o circumstance_n in_o which_o i_o do_v not_o contend_v against_o he_o ii_o if_o then_o it_o lie_v not_o in_o legislation_n or_o canon_n make_v let_v we_o consider_v whether_o it_o lie_v in_o judge_v or_o execute_v and_o this_o must_v be_v chief_o about_o excommunication_n and_o absolution_n as_o it_o concern_v the_o laity_n and_o here_o 1._o the_o business_n be_v not_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o law_n but_o of_o the_o person_n by_o the_o law_n it_o be_v not_o to_o judge_v in_o plain_a case_n whether_o we_o must_v avoid_v a_o impenitent_a fornicator_n a_o drunkard_n a_o blasphemer_n a_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n for_o if_o the_o bishop_n say_v nay_o we_o must_v not_o believe_v he_o or_o obey_v he_o and_o for_o difficult_a instance_n of_o the_o species_n of_o sin_n deserve_v it_o be_v partly_o the_o work_n of_o a_o expositor_n of_o scripture_n to_o determine_v of_o they_o and_o partly_o of_o the_o canon_n and_o law_n of_o the_o land_n where_o magistrate_n and_o presbyter_n be_v efficient_a and_o bishop_n themselves_o oblige_v as_o well_o as_o presbyter_n the_o business_n therefore_o be_v to_o judge_v whether_o this_o person_n be_v guilty_a of_o such_o book_n a_o crime_n and._n 2._o whether_o he_o be_v impenitent_a therein_o and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o a_o parochus_n that_o be_v a_o cohabit_v pastor_n who_o be_v upon_o the_o place_n and_o know_v the_o party_n and_o not_o of_o a_o strange_a bishop_n over_o a_o a_o thousand_o or_o many_o hundred_o church_n i_o have_v partly_o show_v before_o and_o partly_o shall_v show_v now_o and_o partly_o hereafter_o at_o the_o present_n let_v the_o unexperienced_a consider_v of_o this_o which_o any_o novice_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o place_n may_v know_v 1._o a_o bishop_n especial_o arm_v with_o penal_a terror_n or_o a_o chancellour_n court_n be_v not_o like_a to_o know_v of_o one_o scandalous_a impenitent_a person_n of_o a_o hundred_o which_o the_o present_a pastor_n be_v like_a to_o know_v of_o for_o experience_n tell_v we_o that_o few_o honest_a man_n will_v accuse_v their_o neighbour_n where_o they_o shall_v but_o get_v hatred_n and_o foresee_v no_o more_o probality_n of_o procure_v the_o person_n repentance_n by_o it_o and_o that_o churchwarden_n do_v not_o and_o will_v not_o do_v it_o many_o man_n that_o fear_v perjury_n refuse_v the_o oath_n lest_o they_o shall_v break_v it_o or_o sin_n in_o keep_v it_o as_o it_o bind_v they_o to_o prosecute_v many_o man_n for_o conscientious_a nonconformity_n and_o those_o that_o take_v the_o cath_z before_o they_o fear_v a_o oath_n will_v make_v no_o conscience_n at_o all_o of_o break_v it_o so_o that_o a_o matter_n of_o notorious_a fact_n be_v past_a dispute_n the_o land_n know_v that_o not_o one_o swearer_n curser_n fornicator_n adulterer_n railer_n thief_n derider_n of_o scripture_n and_o religion_n etc._n etc._n of_o a_o multitude_n be_v ever_o accuse_v at_o the_o bishop_n court_n whereas_o the_o present_a pastor_n can_v scarce_o choose_v but_o know_v the_o great_a part_n of_o these_o in_o his_o parish_n by_o dwell_v among_o they_o where_o he_o shall_v have_v frequent_a notice_n of_o it_o say_v as_o long_o as_o you_o will_v that_o this_o be_v long_o of_o the_o minister_n or_o long_o of_o the_o churchwarden_n or_o of_o the_o apparitor_n we_o know_v that_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o 2._o and_o in_o church_n judgement_n where_o a_o man_n repentance_n be_v the_o cause_n in_o question_n he_o have_v the_o advantage_n a_o hundred_o fold_n that_o be_v present_a for_o the_o tenor_n of_o his_o life_n before_o and_o after_o will_v be_v of_o great_a signification_n in_o judge_v of_o this_o a_o man_n that_o never_o fall_v into_o such_o a_o sin_n before_o and_o that_o quick_o lament_v it_o by_o free_a confession_n know_v to_o the_o pastor_n may_v easy_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v penitent_a but_o a_o man_n that_o have_v many_o year_n continue_v in_o a_o wicked_a life_n and_o that_o after_o all_o admonition_n and_o persuasion_n to_o repent_v confess_v one_o day_n and_o sin_v the_o next_o and_o perhaps_o deride_v the_o pastor_n and_o make_v a_o jest_n of_o his_o own_o confession_n be_v not_o so_o quick_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o yet_o the_o strange_a diocesan_n or_o chancellor_n shall_v not_o know_v the_o difference_n nor_o hear_v any_o more_o at_o the_o best_a than_o i_o repent_v and_o whereas_o they_o say_v if_o he_o sin_v again_o he_o be_v to_o be_v accuse_v again_o 1._o they_o know_v de_fw-fr facere_fw-la that_o this_o be_v seldom_o do_v except_o against_o some_o conscientious_a nonconformist_n 2._o and_o when_o neighbour_n see_v that_o the_o man_n who_o they_o enrage_v against_o they_o by_o a_o accusation_n come_v home_o again_o by_o say_v i_o repent_v and_o pay_v his_o fee_n and_o do_v but_o watch_n to_o execute_v his_o malice_n against_o the_o accuser_n they_o will_v meddle_v in_o such_o improfitable_a work_n no_o more_o 3._o and_o whereas_o the_o chancellor_n or_o diocesane_n must_v go_v upon_o the_o witness_n report_n 1._o the_o credit_n of_o the_o witness_n will_v be_v unknown_a to_o they_o because_o it_o lie_v upon_o the_o honesty_n of_o the_o person_n who_o they_o know_v not_o but_o by_o other_o person_n nor_o those_o other_o but_o by_o other_o and_o they_o be_v force_v to_o take_v all_o our_o slight_a report_n usualy_a from_o some_o flatterer_n of_o themselves_o almost_o the_o worst_a man_n in_o the_o parish_n account_v by_o they_o the_o best_a and_o most_o credible_a because_o they_o know_v not_o they_o aright_o nor_o the_o rest_n at_o all_o 2._o and_o how_o unsatisfactory_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o a_o man_n conscience_n to_o judge_n at_o random_n or_o upon_o the_o uncertain_a credit_n of_o they_o scarce_o know_v who_o in_o a_o c●se_n of_o excommunication_n or_o absolution_n whereas_o the_o present_a pastor_n may_v go_v on_o far_o more_o clear_a and_o satisfactory_a ground_n 4._o moreover_o the_o conviction_n of_o a_o sinner_n before_o excommunication_n or_o absolution_n require_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o time_n and_o a_o great_a many_o word_n and_o those_o choose_v with_o the_o great_a skill_n and_o set_v home_o with_o the_o great_a life_n and_o light_n and_o love_n that_o can_v be_v manifest_v by_o the_o speaker_n
plainness_n and_o simplicity_n of_o those_o that_o be_v describe_v and_o of_o their_o write_n i_o speak_v not_o in_o any_o contempt_n of_o they_o for_o this_o perhaps_o we_o value_v common_a learning_n now_o too_o high_o but_o only_o to_o tell_v you_o the_o true_a history_n of_o those_o time_n no_o doubt_n but_o many_o poor_a man_n among_o we_o divers_a weaver_n and_o some_o plowman_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o be_v remove_v from_o for_o instance_n be_v able_a to_o pray_v and_o teach_v as_o well_o as_o most_o of_o those_o who_o be_v by_o eusebius_n extol_v as_o the_o famous_a bishop_n of_o the_o second_o and_o three_o age_n and_o to_o write_v as_o methodical_a pious_a weighty_a tractate_v as_o any_o that_o be_v then_o write_v by_o man_n that_o neither_o converse_v with_o the_o apostle_n nor_o have_v be_v breed_v up_o in_o philosophy_n that_o i_o say_v rot_n as_o clemens_n romanus_n himself_o or_o ignatius_n or_o irenaeus_n yea_o or_o cyprian_n epistle_n be_v yea_o or_o as_o many_o of_o the_o age_n follow_v even_o as_o holy_a macarius_n epherm_n cyrus_n synisius_n a_o philosopher_n isidore_n pelusiota_n and_o many_o more_o have_v write_v since_o if_o this_o be_v not_o believe_v how_o many_o layman_n can_v i_o name_v who_o have_v write_v more_o accurate_o and_o judicious_o and_o as_o far_o as_o the_o write_n show_v as_o pious_o as_o any_o of_o these_o and_o that_o not_o only_o learned_a layman_n but_o man_n that_o have_v neither_o many_o language_n nor_o philosophy_n and_o if_o the_o book_n then_o write_v be_v very_o few_o and_o of_o those_o very_o few_o that_o be_v write_v by_o any_o but_o bishop_n or_o philosopher_n and_o those_o few_o so_o plain_a as_o we_o see_v they_o be_v the_o best_a of_o they_o far_o below_o the_o write_n of_o abundance_n of_o late_a latin_a and_o english_a and_o french_a writer_n that_o be_v but_o presbyter_n you_o may_v easy_o judge_v of_o what_o part_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o presbyter_n of_o those_o time_n be_v that_o never_o write_v and_o from_o hence_o you_o may_v gather_v the_o reason_n 1._o why_o so_o few_o volume_n be_v leave_v we_o write_v in_o the_o two_o first_o age_n 2._o and_o why_o the_o church_n have_v then_o so_o many_o presbyter_n whatever_o doctor_n hammond_n say_v to_o the_o contrary_a without_o any_o proof_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o find_v such_o christian_n as_o aforedecribe_v who_o may_v competent_o guide_v the_o rest_n by_o doctrine_n worship_n discipline_n and_o example_n though_o to_o find_v learned_a man_n be_v hard_a 3._o and_o you_o may_v see_v why_o so_o many_o heretic_n boast_v so_o much_o of_o their_o high_a knowledge_n and_o platonical_a etc._n etc._n speculation_n as_o account_v the_o orthodox_n to_o be_v ignorant_a man_n 4._o and_o you_o may_v see_v why_o so_o few_o be_v champion_n for_o the_o truth_n 5._o and_o why_o there_o be_v so_o many_o party_n and_o division_n when_o the_o elder_n be_v many_o and_o less_o judicious_a 6._o and_o you_o may_v see_v how_o the_o opinion_n of_o ecclesiastic_a mere_a rule_v elder_n come_v up_o and_o how_o to_o expound_v paul_n 1_o tim._n 5._o 17._o especial_o they_o that_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n for_o it_o be_v but_o here_o and_o there_o a_o learned_a or_o special_a gift_a christian_a that_o be_v able_a solemn_o and_o ornate_o to_o preach_v decide_v hard_a case_n and_o controversy_n confute_v heretic_n and_o guide_v the_o church_n in_o difficult_a case_n and_o the_o rest_n do_v sit_v about_o the_o bishop_n as_o his_o assistant_n and_o preach_v and_o officiate_v at_o his_o direction_n and_o oversee_v the_o people_n from_o man_n to_o man_n be_v of_o the_o same_o order_n and_o office_n with_o the_o bishop_n but_o not_o of_o the_o same_o part_n and_o therefore_o not_o equal_a in_o the_o exercise_n 7._o and_o therefore_o last_o hence_o you_o may_v see_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o first_o fix_v particular_a church_n episcopacy_n those_o few_o that_o be_v philosopher_n or_o eminent_o qualify_v be_v scarce_o enough_o to_o make_v one_o for_o every_o church_n do_v by_o their_o gift_n overtop_v the_o rest_n in_o the_o due_a esteem_n of_o all_o the_o people_n who_o be_v bind_v to_o esteem_v he_o wise_a that_o be_v wise_a and_o to_o yield_v more_o to_o his_o judgement_n than_o to_o other_o that_o know_v less_o and_o this_o inequality_n of_o gift_n usual_o last_v as_o long_o as_o life_n and_o therefore_o so_o do_v the_o inequality_n of_o esteem_n and_o reverence_n and_o both_o the_o people_n and_o the_o inferior_a gift_a pastor_n obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o nature_n and_o ready_o give_v honour_n to_o who_o honour_n be_v due_a and_o when_o one_o be_v dead_a find_v another_o still_o to_o excel_v the_o rest_n they_o according_o prefer_v he_o before_o the_o rest_n even_o as_o a_o excellent_a physician_n will_v be_v by_o the_o patient_n and_o by_o all_o the_o young_a and_o more_o ignorant_a physician_n that_o be_v not_o carry_v away_o with_o pride_n and_o this_o do_v easy_o as_o all_o thing_n else_o turn_v into_o formality_n under_o pretence_n of_o order_n and_o come_v to_o seem_v a_o kind_n of_o office_n but_o when_o difference_n require_v it_o i_o know_v not_o but_o that_o all_o this_o be_v well_o do_v except_o that_o they_o foresee_v not_o the_o degenerate_a tyranny_n that_o will_v afterward_o hence_o arise_v this_o present_a experience_n open_v to_o we_o to_o the_o day_n what_o do_v set_v up_o luther_n and_o melancthon_n and_o illyricus_n but_o their_o eminent_a part_n what_o else_o give_v zuinglius_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o presidencie_n at_o zurich_n what_o else_o do_v set_v up_o calvin_n and_o beza_n at_o geneva_n and_o knox_n and_o henderson_n in_o scotland_n and_o all_o our_o parish_n that_o have_v chapel_n and_o curate_n show_v it_o here_o in_o england_n where_o one_o man_n for_o his_o worth_n be_v think_v mere_a to_o have_v the_o benefice_n and_o chief_a cure_n but_o other_o may_v be_v choose_v by_o he_o and_o place_v under_o he_o and_o maintain_v by_o he_o by_o the_o bishop_n allowance_n as_o his_o curate_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v so_o long_o before_o academy_n make_v a_o sufficient_a store_n of_o man_n of_o sufficiency_n for_o every_o presbyter_n place_n that_o for_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v few_o breed_v up_o to_o competent_a learning_n except_o either_o under_o heathen_n or_o else_o in_o a_o bishop_n house_n or_o here_o and_o there_o as_o a_o auditor_n of_o some_o one_o rare_a teacher_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n as_o a_o disciple_n of_o pantenus_n and_o origen_n of_o clemens_fw-la and_o some_o few_o other_o come_v to_o learning_n as_o auditor_n in_o that_o alexandrian_a school_n but_o few_o other_o place_n beside_o alexandria_n have_v any_o such_o school_n of_o a_o long_a time_n in_o so_o much_o as_o nazianzen_n basil_n greg._n nissen_n chrysostome_n etc._n etc._n be_v teach_v at_o athens_n by_o lybanius_fw-la and_o such_o other_o heathen_n and_o ambrose_n augustine_n and_o many_o other_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d self_n teach_v so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a then_o to_o have_v many_o learned_a man_n ordinary_o for_o one_o church_n or_o congregation_n and_o yet_o many_o presbyter_n certain_o they_o have_v which_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n that_o one_o learned_a man_n be_v make_v a_o overseer_n and_o guide_n to_o the_o rest_n who_o be_v his_o curate_n or_o assistant_n gift_v like_o our_o wise_a sort_n of_o the_o laity_n but_o of_o the_o same_o office_n and_o order_n with_o he_o and_o this_o bishop_n be_v the_o usual_a preacher_n and_o the_o other_o do_v learn_v of_o he_o to_o preach_v and_o grow_v up_o under_o he_o as_o scholar_n and_o he_o that_o come_v to_o great_a ability_n under_o he_o be_v choose_v for_o a_o bishop_n to_o another_o church_n that_o want_v but_o not_o without_o his_o own_o bishop_n consent_n which_o make_v the_o debate_n in_o counsel_n so_o frequent_a whether_o a_o presbyter_n may_v remove_v to_o another_o church_n or_o be_v choose_v for_o a_o bishop_n of_o another_o church_n and_o a_o african_a council_n give_v it_o as_o a_o reason_n why_o that_o bishop_n that_o have_v able_a presbyter_n shall_v not_o refuse_v to_o let_v one_o go_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n elsewhere_o because_o where_o there_o be_v many_o fit_a to_o be_v presbyter_n there_o be_v but_o few_o man_n fit_a to_o be_v make_v bishop_n which_o imply_v that_o they_o take_v it_o not_o then_o for_o a_o mere_a place_n of_o order_n where_o one_o man_n of_o equal_a part_n be_v for_o unity_n to_o rule_v the_o rest_n but_o for_o a_o necessary_a difference_n of_o exercise_v the_o same_o office_n because_o of_o the_o different_a ability_n of_o the_o officer_n which_o be_v not_o only_o to_o keep_v a_o order_n by_o disparity_n of_o place_n but_o to_o educate_v the_o presbyter_n to_o great_a
ability_n and_o to_o manage_v god_n work_n in_o each_o assembly_n more_o skilful_o and_o guide_v the_o church_n more_o prudent_o and_o defend_v the_o truth_n more_o powerful_o than_o common_a unlearned_a presbyter_n can_v do_v now_o let_v it_o be_v for_o the_o present_a grant_v that_o for_o such_o reason_n episcopacy_n in_o each_o church_n be_v just_o settle_v and_o call_v it_o a_o order_n or_o a_o degree_n as_o you_o please_v it_o will_v be_v a_o difficult_a question_n what_o shall_v be_v judge_v of_o those_o that_o have_v the_o same_o place_n and_o title_n without_o the_o same_o qualification_n and_o precedency_n of_o part_n because_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o power_n fail_v if_o one_o be_v choose_v bishop_n to_o keep_v out_o hetesie_n and_o he_o prove_v a_o heretic_n and_o the_o presbyter_n orthodox_n whatis_o his_o power_n to_o that_o end_n if_o one_o be_v choose_v bishop_n to_o keep_v out_o schisin_n and_o he_o prove_v a_o schisinatick_a or_o sect-master_n and_o the_o rest_n concordant_a what_o be_v his_o power_n if_o one_o be_v make_v bishop_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n better_o than_o the_o presbytres_n and_o to_o teach_v the_o presbyter_n themselves_o and_o to_o defend_v truth_n and_o godliness_n and_o he_o prove_v more_o ignorant_a than_o the_o presbyter_n and_o preach_v not_o to_o the_o thousand_o or_o hundred_o part_n of_o his_o diocese_n once_o in_o all_o his_o life_n nor_o to_o any_o at_o all_o past_a once_o in_o many_o week_n or_o month_n or_o year_n and_o if_o he_o do_v but_o silence_v the_o minister_n that_o be_v able_a and_o far_o more_o pious_a than_o himself_o what_o power_n have_v he_o as_o a_o bishop_n to_o those_o end_n sure_o i_o be_o that_o dispositio_fw-la mater●e_fw-la be_v necessary_a as_o sine_fw-la qua_fw-la no●_n ad_fw-la receptionem_fw-la formae_fw-la if_o one_o be_v make_v a_o schoolmaster_n that_o can_v reach_v the_o scholar_n half_a so_o much_o as_o they_o know_v already_o but_o have_v need_n to_o learn_v of_o they_o and_o yet_o will_v neither_o learn_v of_o they_o nor_o suffer_v they_o to_o learn_v without_o he_o i_o know_v not_o well_o how_o far_o he_o be_v their_o schoolmaster_n indeed_o if_o one_o be_v make_v a_o physician_n that_o know_v not_o half_a so_o much_o as_o i_o do_v i_o shall_v be_v loath_a for_o order_n sake_n to_o venture_v my_o life_n upon_o his_o trust_n nor_o yet_o to_o venture_v my_o own_o life_n and_o other_o in_o a_o ship_n that_o have_v a_o ignorant_a pilot_n when_o the_o mariner_n have_v more_o skill_n but_o must_v not_o use_v it_o order_n and_o office_n that_o be_v appoint_v for_o the_o work_n be_v sake_n essential_o suppose_v ability_n for_o that_o work_n and_o without_o the_o necessary_a qualification_n they_o be_v but_o the_o carcase_n or_o image_n of_o the_o office_n but_o of_o this_o before_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o christian_a flock_n can_v never_o yet_o be_v cure_v by_o all_o the_o a●t_n or_o tyranny_n that_o can_v be_v use_v of_o the_o esteem_n of_o real_a wisdom_n and_o godliness_n and_o prefer_v it_o before_o a_o empty_a title_n or_o a_o pompous_a show_n and_o from_o set_v less_o by_o ignorance_n and_o impiety_n venerable_o name_v and_o array_v then_o by_o self_n evidence_v worth_n nor_o from_o value_v a_o shepherd_n that_o daily_o feed_v they_o from_o a_o wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n that_o have_v fang_n and_o bloody_a jaw_n and_o fleece_v and_o devour_v the_o flock_n with_o the_o shepherd_n and_o hence_o we_o may_v say_v that_o god_n himself_o use_v to_o give_v bishop_n to_o the_o church_n whether_o man_n will_v or_o not_o while_o he_o give_v they_o such_o as_o jerome_n luther_n melan●●horn_n bucer_n calvin_n zanchius_n &c_n &c_n who_o have_v episcopal_a ability_n and_o real_o do_v that_o which_o bishop_n be_v first_o appoint_v for_o while_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v hinder_v they_o and_o seek_v their_o blood_n they_o teach_v the_o people_n they_o breed_v up_o young_a minister_n they_o keep_v out_o heresy_n and_o schism_n they_o guide_v the_o church_n by_o the_o light_n of_o sacred_a truth_n and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o reason_n and_o love_n and_o who_o than_o be_v the_o bishop_n who_o be_v the_o real_a architect_n he_o that_o build_v the_o house_n or_o he_o that_o have_v the_o title_n and_o do_v nothing_o unless_o it_o be_v hinder_v the_o builder_n to_o this_o already_o say_v i_o add_v but_o two_o more_o intimation_n which_o i_o desire_v the_o sober_a impartial_a reader_n to_o consider_v 1._o write_v be_v but_o a_o mode_n of_o preach_v and_o of_o the_o two_o it_o be_v worse_a to_o have_v inept_v sermon_n in_o public_a assembly_n and_o so_o god_n work_n and_o worship_n dishonour_v than_o to_o have_v inept_v book_n in_o private_a and_o no_o doubt_n the_o pastor_n oversight_n extend_v to_o public_a and_o private_a now_o while_o the_o mere_a worth_n of_o book_n without_o any_o authority_n commend_v they_o to_o the_o world_n though_o sometime_o with_o some_o few_o giddy_a pamphlet_n be_v accept_v yet_o that_o be_v but_o for_o a_o fit_a and_o ordinary_o the_o bookseller_n sufficient_o restrain_v all_o that_o be_v not_o of_o worth_n because_o they_o can_v sell_v they_o but_o if_o a_o bishop_n must_v impose_v on_o all_o the_o people_n what_o book_n they_o must_v read_v in_o many_o kingdom_n it_o will_v be_v for_o the_o pope_n and_o mass_n in_o other_o for_o exorcism_n and_o consubstantion_n etc._n etc._n 2._o be_v not_o order_n for_o the_o the_o thing_n order_v episcopacy_n be_v for_o the_o church_n benefit_n by_o the_o bishop_n eminent_a gift_n and_o part_n but_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v of_o low_a part_n than_o the_o pastor_n and_o a_o envious_a malignant_a hinderer_n of_o their_o work_n quere_z whether_o the_o order_n be_v humane_a cease_v not_o ubi_fw-la cessat_fw-la subjecti_fw-la dispositio_fw-la &_o relatio_fw-la ad_fw-la finem_fw-la when_o the_o end_n and_o the_o peson_n capacity_n cease_v ii_o but_o how_o the_o world_n by_o the_o countenance_n of_o emperor_n be_v invite_v to_o come_v in_o it_o the_o church_n how_o worldly_a wealth_n power_n and_o honour_n do_v endue_v they_o how_o bishopric_n be_v make_v bait_n for_o the_o proud_a and_o tyrannical_a and_o covetous_a how_o such_o than_o seek_v they_o and_o so_o the_o worldly_a spirit_n have_v the_o rule_n and_o alter_v episcopacy_n i_o show_v in_o the_o history_n before_o the_o second_o part._n have_v in_o the_o former_a part_n lay_v down_o those_o ground_n on_o which_o the_o applicatory_a part_n be_v to_o be_v build_v and_o subvert_v the_o foundation_n of_o that_o diocesane_a frame_n which_o we_o judge_v unlawful_a i_o shall_v now_o proceed_v to_o give_v you_o the_o application_n in_o the_o particular_a reason_n of_o our_o judgement_n from_o the_o evil_n which_o we_o suppose_v this_o frame_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o chap._n i._n the_o clear_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n the_o occasion_n of_o our_o dispute_n or_o rather_o apology_n be_v know_v in_o england_n 1._o every_o man_n that_o be_v ordain_v deacon_n or_o presbyter_n or_o license_v a_o schoolmaster_n must_v subscribe_v to_o the_o book_n of_o article_n liturgy_n and_o ordination_n as_o exit_fw-la animo_fw-la that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o they_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o late_a act_n of_o uniformity_n that_o he_o do_v assent_n and_o consent_n to_o all_o thing_n contain_v in_o and_o prescribe_v by_o the_o say_a book_n as_o since_o alter_v we_o think_v for_o the_o worse_o 2._o in_o the_o year_n 1640_o the_o convocation_n form_v print_a and_o impose_v a_o new_a oath_n in_o these_o word_n after_o other_o nor_o will_v i_o ever_o give_v my_o consent_n to_o alter_v the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n by_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n dean_n arch-deacon_n etc._n etc._n as_o it_o stand_v now_o establish_v and_o as_o by_o right_a it_o ought_v to_o stand_v 3._o after_o this_o the_o parliament_n in_o the_o war_n impose_v a_o vow_n and_o covenant_n on_o the_o minister_n and_o people_n contrary_a to_o this_o call_v the_o et_fw-fr caetrea_fw-mi oath_n which_o vow_v contain_v a_o clause_n to_o endeavour_v the_o extirpation_n of_o this_o prelacy_n in_o the_o westminster_n assembly_n before_o it_o pass_v many_o learned_a divine_n declare_v that_o they_o will_v not_o take_v it_o as_o against_o prelacy_n unexplain_v lest_o it_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v against_o all_o episcopacy_n which_o be_v not_o their_o judgement_n they_o be_v for_o the_o primitive_a episcopacy_n to_o satisfy_v these_o man_n that_o else_o have_v protest_v against_o it_o and_o the_o assembly_n be_v divide_v the_o scot_n and_o some_o other_o be_v against_o all_o the_o additional_a title_n of_o dean_n chapter_n etc._n etc._n be_v put_v in_o as_o a_o description_n of_o the_o peculiar_a english_a frame_n of_o prelacy_n which_o they_o all_o agree_v against_o since_o his_o majesty_n restoration_n there_o be_v many_o act_n
bishop_n and_o distinct_a from_o cathedral_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v there_o bury_v before_o they_o be_v build_v and_o in_o be_v which_o say_v selden_n begin_v in_o england_n seven_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n here_o one_o and_o there_o one_o as_o a_o patron_n erect_v it_o selden_n of_o tithe_n pag._n 267._o yea_o in_o seven_o hundred_o he_o find_v but_o one_o of_o earl_n puch_n in_o beda_n and_o in_o anno_fw-la 800._o divers_a appropriate_a to_o crowland_n and_o so_o after_o and_o it_o be_v the_o character_n of_o a_o parish_n church_n to_o have_v baptisterium_fw-la &_o sepulturam_fw-la pag._n 262._o so_o that_o before_o a_o bishop_n church_n however_o call_v have_v but_o one_o place_n that_o have_v baptisterium_fw-la &_o sepulturam_fw-la yea_o long_o after_o that_o parish_n have_v very_o few_o member_n in_o most_o place_n so_o long_o be_v it_o ever_o the_o people_n be_v bring_v to_o christianity_n and_o they_o be_v then_o as_o our_o bishop_n make_v they_o now_o not_o proper_a church_n but_o chapel_n of_o ease_n selden_n ibid._n pag._n 267._o tell_v you_o that_o ralph_n nevil_n bishop_n of_o chichester_n and_o chancellor_n of_o england_n request_v of_o the_o king_n that_o the_o church_n of_o saint_n peter_n in_o chichester_n may_v be_v pull_v down_o and_o lay_v to_o another_o parish_n because_o it_o be_v poor_a have_v but_o two_o parishioner_n sure_o it_o be_v never_o build_v for_o two_o person_n but_o it_o be_v like_o many_o be_v heathen_n or_o if_o not_o so_o then_o in_o the_o year_n 700_o and_o 800_o they_o be_v so_o though_o master_n thomas_n jones_n have_v well_o prove_v that_o the_o british_a church_n be_v far_o extend_v before_o gregory_n send_v austin_n and_o that_o our_o bishop_n and_o religion_n be_v derive_v from_o they_o even_o at_o tours_n in_o france_n in_o the_o day_n of_o saint_n martin_n notwithstanding_o all_o his_o miracle_n the_o christian_n be_v not_o so_o many_o as_o the_o heathen_n at_o least_o till_o one_o public_a miracle_n towards_o his_o late_a time_n convince_v some_o chap._n vi_o the_o same_o further_o confirm_v by_o the_o ancient_n i._o eusebius_n demonstrat_n evangel_n pag._n 138._o say_v when_o he_o consider_v the_o power_n of_o christ_n word_n how_o it_o persuade_v innumerable_a congregation_n of_o man_n and_o by_o those_o ignoble_a and_o rustic_a disciple_n of_o jesus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d numerosissimae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la be_v constitute_v not_o in_o certain_a unknown_a and_o obscure_a place_n but_o erect_v in_o the_o most_o famous_a city_n rome_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n through_o all_o egypt_n and_o lycia_n through_o europe_n and_o asia_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o village_n and_o country_n or_o region_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o nation_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o village_n have_v church_n then_o ii_o though_o of_o late_a date_n consider_v the_o history_n of_o patrick_n plantation_n of_o church_n in_o ireland_n who_o be_v say_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o time_n to_o have_v three_o hundred_o sixty_o five_o church_n and_o as_o many_o bishop_n and_o three_o thousand_o presbyter_n as_o ninius_n report_v not_o only_o thorndike_n take_v notice_n of_o this_o but_o a_o better_a author_n ʋsher_n de_fw-fr eccles_n brit._n primord_n pa._n 950._o and_o selden_n in_o his_o comment_n on_o eutychius_n origines_fw-la alex._n pag._n 86._o from_o antoninus_n and_o vincentius_n thus_o mention_v it_o certain_o tantum_fw-la in_o orbe_fw-la terrarum_fw-la tunc_fw-la temporis_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la segetem_fw-la mirari_fw-la forsan_fw-la desinet_fw-la quisquis_fw-la crediderit_fw-la quod_fw-la de_fw-fr b._n patricio_n hibernensi_fw-la antoninus_n &_o vincentius_n tradunt_fw-la eum_n scilicet_fw-la solum_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la fundasse_fw-la 365._o totidemque_fw-la episcopos_fw-la ordinasse_n praeter_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la 3000._o qua_fw-la de_fw-la re_fw-la consulas_fw-la plura_fw-la apud_fw-la praestantissimum_fw-la virum_fw-la jacobum_fw-la usserium_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o that_o here_o be_v to_o every_o church_n a_o bishop_n and_o near_o ten_o presbyter_n no_o man_n will_v doubt_v but_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o better_a sort_n of_o the_o laity_n and_o the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o second_o sort_n and_o all_o below_o many_o private_a christian_n now_o among_o we_o and_o be_v there_o three_o hundred_o sixty_o five_o city_n think_v you_o in_o ireland_n yea_o or_o corporation_n either_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o conjecture_v what_o church_n these_o be_v iii_o all_o history_n father_n and_o council_n consent_v that_o every_o city_n be_v to_o have_v a_o bishop_n and_o presbytery_n to_o govern_v and_o teach_v the_o christian_n of_o that_o city_n and_o the_o country_n people_n near_o it_o which_o be_v but_o a_o parish_n or_o presbyterian_a church_n for_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v in_o the_o old_a common_a use_n any_o big_a town_n yea_o little_a town_n that_o be_v distinct_a from_o country_n farm_n and_o scatter_a village_n so_o that_o all_o our_o corporation_n and_o market_n town_n be_v oppida_fw-la and_o such_o city_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v therefore_o even_o by_o this_o rule_n we_o shall_v have_v a_o bishop_n to_o every_o such_o town_n 1._o crete_n be_v call_v hecatompolis_n as_o have_v a_o hundred_o city_n as_o homer_n say_v it_o have_v and_o what_o kind_n of_o city_n be_v those_o which_o be_v to_o have_v a_o hundred_o church_n and_o bishop_n in_o a_o small_a island_n 2._o theocritus_n idyl_n 13._o de_fw-la laudibus_fw-la ptolem._n vers_fw-la 82._o say_v that_o he_o have_v under_o his_o government_n thirty_o three_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d city_n and_o if_o so_o they_o must_v be_v as_o small_a as_o our_o borough_n if_o not_o some_o village_n certain_o he_o have_v not_o above_o twice_o the_o number_n of_o city_n eminent_o so_o call_v that_o stephanus_n byzantinus_n can_v find_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o his_o book_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 3._o he_o that_o will_v peruse_v and_o compare_v the_o text_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o city_n use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d above_o sixscore_o time_n and_o see_v grotius_n on_o luk._n 7._o 11._o etc._n etc._n shall_v soon_o see_v that_o the_o word_n be_v there_o use_v for_o such_o town_n as_o i_o be_o mention_v if_o not_o less_o iu_o sozomen_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 3._o tell_v we_o that_o majuma_n which_o be_v navale_fw-mi gazae_fw-la be_v as_o part_v of_o its_o suburb_n or_o the_o adjoin_a part_n but_o twenty_o stadia_fw-la distant_a be_v because_o it_o have_v many_o christian_n honour_v by_o constantine_n with_o the_o name_n of_o a_o city_n and_o have_v a_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o and_o julian_n in_o malice_n take_v from_o they_o the_o honour_n of_o be_v a_o city_n but_o they_o keep_v their_o bishop_n for_o all_o that_o it_o have_v the_o same_o magistrate_n with_o gaza_n and_o the_o same_o military_a governor_n and_o the_o same_o republic_n but_o be_v diversify_v only_o by_o their_o church-state_n for_o say_v he_o each_o have_v their_o own_o bishop_n and_o their_o own_o clergy_n and_o the_o altar_n belong_v to_o each_o bishopric_n be_v distinct_a and_o therefore_o afterward_o the_o bishop_n of_o gaza_n labour_v to_o subject_v the_o clergy_n of_o majuma_n to_o himself_o say_v that_o it_o be_v unmeet_a that_o one_o city_n shall_v have_v two_o bishop_n but_o a_o council_n call_v for_o that_o purpose_n do_v confirm_v the_o church-right_a of_o majuma_n v._o gregory_n neocaesariensis_n call_v thaumaturgus_n be_v by_o force_n make_v bishop_n of_o that_o city_n where_o all_o the_o christian_n be_v but_o seventeen_o at_o his_o ordination_n such_o be_v the_o bishop_n church_n and_o when_o he_o have_v preach_v and_o do_v miracle_n there_o till_o his_o persecution_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o presbyter_n he_o have_v with_o he_o but_o of_o his_o deacon_n musonius_n that_o flee_v with_o he_o though_o when_o he_o die_v he_o leave_v but_o seventeen_o unconvert_v and_o when_o he_o have_v convert_v some_o at_o comana_n a_o small_a town_n near_o he_o 10._o he_o do_v not_o set_v a_o presbyter_n over_o it_o and_o make_v it_o part_n of_o his_o own_o diocese_n but_o appoint_v alexander_n the_o collier_n to_o be_v their_o bishop_n and_o that_o over_o a_o church_n who_o be_v no_o more_o than_o meet_v and_o debate_v the_o case_n of_o his_o election_n and_o reception_n see_v greg._n nyssen_n in_o orat._n in_o greg._n thaumat_n &_o basil_n the_o spirit_n sancto_fw-it cap._n 19_o &_o breviar_n roman_n die_v 15_o novemb_n &_o menolog_n graec._n vi_o council_n nic._n oecum_fw-la 1._o can._n 13._o decree_v that_o every_o one_o that_o before_o death_n desire_v the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o have_v it_o from_o the_o bishop_n one_o ed._n in_o crab_n say_v generaliter_fw-la omni_fw-la cuilibet_fw-la in_o exitu_fw-la posito_fw-la &_o poscenti_fw-la sibi_fw-la communionis_fw-la gratiam_fw-la tribui_fw-la episcopus_fw-la
it_o be_v not_o actual_a confirmation_n which_o they_o think_v necessary_a but_o a_o desire_n of_o confirmation_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o diocesanes_n hand_n be_v make_v a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o christian_a church_n communion_n 12._o as_o it_o be_v before_o say_v that_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o judge_v who_o shall_v be_v confirm_v and_o admit_v into_o the_o rank_n of_o communicate_v member_n so_o he_o have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o effectual_o to_o keep_v away_o the_o gross_a offender_n or_o to_o forbear_v his_o own_o actual_a put_v the_o sacrament_n into_o their_o hand_n for_o though_o the_o canon_n seem_v to_o favour_v his_o power_n and_o the_o rubric_n say_v somewhat_o the_o same_o way_n yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v 1._o that_o whereas_o the_o rubric_n allow_v he_o to_o advertise_v the_o scandalous_a not_o to_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o it_o be_v only_o the_o contentious_a that_o have_v injure_v other_o and_o be_v not_o reconcile_v who_o he_o be_v plain_o enable_v to_o refuse_v 2._o among_o those_o that_o he_o may_v advertise_v not_o to_o come_v the_o gross_o ignorant_a who_o know_v not_o what_o christ_n or_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o atheist_n infidel_n and_o heretic_n be_v not_o number_v at_o all_o but_o a_o open_a and_o notorious_a evil_a liver_n or_o that_o have_v do_v wrong_a to_o his_o neighbour_n 3._o and_o if_o he_o be_v never_o so_o wicked_a yet_o unless_o also_o the_o congregation_n be_v thereby_o offend_v the_o curate_n can_v hinder_v he_o or_o so_o much_o as_o advertise_v he_o not_o to_o come_v and_o so_o if_o only_o a_o few_o godly_a person_n be_v offend_v they_o be_v not_o the_o congregation_n or_o if_o the_o minor_a part_n be_v offend_v they_o be_v not_o the_o congregation_n and_o how_o shall_v the_o minister_n know_v whether_o the_o major_a part_n be_v offend_v for_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o ask_v they_o much_o less_o to_o put_v it_o to_o the_o vote_n and_o the_o major_a part_n will_v never_o come_v to_o he_o nor_o be_v accuser_n and_o if_o the_o major_a part_n which_o be_v no_o wonder_n be_v themselves_o so_o ignorant_a heretical_a or_o ungodly_a as_o not_o to_o be_v offend_v but_o rather_o to_o take_v the_o sinner_n part_n than_o the_o curate_n must_v give_v they_o all_o the_o sacrament_n and_o have_v no_o remedy_n 4._o and_o he_o that_o must_v not_o live_v in_o tavern_n alehouse_n playhouse_n or_o other_o place_n of_o wickedness_n special_o if_o he_o live_v as_o chrysostome_n do_v who_o never_o do_v so_o much_o as_o eat_v with_o any_o one_o in_o his_o own_o house_n may_v have_v most_o of_o his_o communicant_n to_o be_v abominable_a and_o flagitious_a before_o it_o will_v be_v notorious_a to_o he_o for_o as_o be_v say_v he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o call_v any_o to_o witness_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v unwilling_a and_o few_o will_v be_v willing_a to_o enrage_v their_o neighbour_n when_o they_o foreknow_v that_o it_o will_v do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a 5._o and_o if_o he_o do_v refuse_v any_o one_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o become_v a_o informer_n and_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o same_o to_o the_o ordinary_a within_o fouteen_fw-mi day_n at_o the_o far_a whenas_o 1._o perhaps_o he_o may_v dwell_v many_o score_n mile_n off_o 2._o and_o have_v his_o study_n and_o all_o other_o business_n on_o his_o hand_n 3._o and_o must_v then_o bring_v his_o proof_n when_o he_o be_v not_o enable_v to_o examine_v any_o witness_n nor_o take_v proof_n of_o that_o which_o to_o all_o other_o be_v notorious_a 4._o it_o be_v a_o great_a doubt_n whether_o the_o sinner_n have_v not_o his_o remedy_n at_o law_n against_o he_o to_o his_o undo_n if_o he_o lay_v not_o by_o all_o his_o other_o business_n to_o prosecute_v the_o proof_n to_o the_o utmost_a and_o if_o he_o do_v lay_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o work_n that_o while_n the_o bishop_n may_v undo_v he_o or_o suspend_v he_o 5._o by_o this_o mean_n he_o shall_v more_o exasperate_v the_o sinner_n by_o prosecute_a they_o to_o such_o a_o court_n as_o the_o prelate_n and_o harden_v they_o against_o all_o profit_v by_o his_o ministry_n than_o if_o by_o his_o pastoral_n office_n he_o have_v himself_o first_o love_o convince_v they_o and_o suspend_v they_o only_o till_o they_o repent_v 6._o when_o he_o have_v all_o do_v if_o the_o sinner_n pay_v his_o fee_n and_o say_v he_o repent_v the_o chancellor_n be_v to_o absolve_v he_o and_o so_o the_o curate_n do_v only_o to_o his_o own_o vexation_n and_o the_o sinner_n hurt_v deny_v he_o the_o sacrament_n but_o once_o and_o if_o the_o wrath_n or_o scorn_n of_o the_o sinner_n show_v that_o he_o be_v far_o from_o true_a repentance_n the_o curate_n can_v deny_v he_o the_o sacrament_n the_o next_o day_n nor_o ever_o after_o till_o he_o not_o only_o again_o commit_v the_o same_o sin_n adultery_n perjury_n drunkenness_n etc._n etc._n but_o till_o it_o be_v again_o notorious_a and_o he_o will_v be_v again_o at_o the_o same_o trouble_n in_o the_o prosecution_n 7._o and_o there_o be_v few_o great_a parish_n in_o england_n where_o there_o be_v no_o swearer_n drunkard_n railer_n fighter_n fornicator_n adulterer_n and_o such_o like_a enough_o to_o hold_v a_o curate_n work_v through_o the_o whole_a year_n to_o prosecute_v they_o though_o he_o lie_v by_o almost_o all_o his_o other_o work_n so_o that_o by_o this_o way_n if_o he_o keep_v such_o from_o the_o sacrament_n he_o must_v keep_v all_o away_o by_o cease_v his_o ministerial_a work_n 8._o the_o curate_n can_v refuse_v he_o till_o he_o have_v call_v and_o advertise_v he_o whereas_o the_o person_n may_v refuse_v to_o come_v to_o he_o at_o least_o by_o pretend_v business_n and_o other_o excuse_n all_o these_o thing_n make_v this_o which_o seem_v his_o most_o considerable_a power_n to_o be_v in_o effect_n but_o next_o to_o none_o 13._o the_o curate_n have_v no_o power_n when_o any_o person_n be_v obstinate_a and_o impenitent_a in_o the_o most_o notorious_a scandal_n or_o heresy_n or_o endeavour_v to_o pervert_v other_o to_o admonish_v he_o before_o all_o that_o other_o may_v beware_v nor_o to_o call_v he_o open_o to_o repentance_n 14._o nor_o have_v he_o any_o power_n to_o judge_v who_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v as_o impenitent_a be_v the_o crime_n never_o so_o heinous_a or_o notorious_a no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o concur_v in_o this_o power_n with_o any_o bishop_n chancellor_z or_o presbyter_n any_o more_o than_o any_o layman_n have_v he_o can_v but_o accuse_v they_o and_o so_o may_v a_o apparitor_n or_o churchwarden_n or_o read_v the_o bishop_n or_o chancellor_n excommunication_n as_o he_o do_v the_o king_n proclamation_n or_o as_o the_o clerk_n do_v other_o write_n 15._o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o absolve_v public_o any_o person_n excommunicate_v no_o more_o than_o a_o lay_v man_n but_o as_o aforesaid_a to_o read_v the_o absolution_n 16._o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o forbear_v his_o own_o act_n of_o read_v a_o excommunication_n against_o the_o faithful_a and_o most_o religious_a person_n in_o his_o parish_n who_o it_o shall_v please_v the_o bishop_n or_o chancellor_n to_o excommunicate_v that_o be_v usual_o a_o nonconformist_n or_o a_o churchwarden_n who_o dare_v not_o swear_v to_o their_o large_a book_n of_o article_n to_o persecute_v the_o nonconformist_n etc._n etc._n or_o one_o that_o appear_v not_o at_o their_o court_n or_o a_o poor_a man_n that_o do_v not_o pay_v their_o fee_n etc._n etc._n the_o poor_a curate_n must_v read_v the_o curse_n against_o they_o 17._o he_o have_v no_o power_n himself_o to_o forbear_v the_o open_a read_n of_o a_o absolution_n of_o the_o most_o impenitent_a wicked_a man_n who_o it_o shall_v please_v the_o chancellor_n to_o absolve_v and_o how_o easy_o that_o be_v procure_v for_o any_o man_n that_o be_v but_o rich_a and_o conformable_a be_v well_o know_v 18._o the_o curate_n have_v no_o power_n so_o much_o as_o to_o baptise_v the_o holy_a believer_n or_o the_o child_n of_o such_o as_o do_v but_o fear_v lest_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o use_v the_o transient_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n as_o a_o humane_a symbol_n of_o christianity_n and_o a_o engage_v dedicate_a sign_n that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n crucify_v and_o manful_o to_o fight_v under_o his_o banner_n against_o the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n and_o to_o continue_v christ_n faithful_a servant_n and_o soldier_n to_o his_o life_n end_n if_o the_o person_n to_o be_v baptize_v be_v a_o turk_n or_o a_o jew_n who_o both_o hate_n idolatry_n and_o shall_v be_v so_o scandalize_v at_o this_o transient_a image_n and_o humane_a symbol_n as_o that_o they_o will_v rather_o never_o be_v christian_n or_o be_v baptise_a than_o receive_v it_o yet_o must_v the_o poor_a priest_n let_v
mean_a time_n they_o observe_v not_o the_o people_n mind_n and_o life_n much_o less_o do_v they_o reform_v they_o nor_o do_v they_o take_v care_n how_o the_o people_n grow_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o true_a godliness_n they_o apply_v not_o themselves_o to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n nor_o persuade_v the_o people_n to_o read_v they_o in_o their_o house_n they_o neither_o take_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o stranger_n nor_o visit_v the_o sick_a as_o little_o care_v how_o and_o with_o what_o faith_n they_o depart_v and_o thus_o they_o discharge_v their_o ministry_n neither_o faithful_o prudent_o nor_o profitable_o it_o be_v indeed_o of_o great_a moment_n that_o they_o bring_v not_o strange_a doctrine_n into_o the_o church_n but_o teach_v the_o scripture_n doctrine_n and_o that_o they_o use_v not_o superstitious_a rite_n but_o be_v not_o content_a with_o simple_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o in_o this_o they_o be_v to_o be_v blame_v that_o they_o do_v thing_n right_a and_o profitable_a not_o from_o the_o heart_n but_o slight_o as_o on_o the_o by_o and_o what_o be_v according_o to_o be_v else_o do_v by_o a_o faithful_a minister_n they_o whole_o neglect_v while_o they_o thus_o minister_v they_o do_v not_o indeed_o bring_v error_n and_o superstition_n into_o the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o forego_n age_n be_v do_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n incline_v to_o the_o other_o extreme_a they_o take_v the_o course_n which_o by_o degree_n will_v bring_v the_o people_n into_o that_o indifferency_n in_o religion_n which_o be_v the_o most_o pestilent_a and_o to_o drink_v in_o epicurism_n the_o waster_n and_o extniguisher_n of_o all_o religion_n wherefore_o i_o beseech_v they_o in_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o full_o perform_v and_o discharge_v their_o ministry_n and_o not_o thus_o by_o the_o half_n thus_o far_o he_o describe_v our_o ordinary_a better_a sort_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o not_o our_o bishop_n and_o pa._n 431._o they_o that_o labour_n more_o to_o keep_v up_o the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n than_o to_o save_v the_o people_n when_o they_o can_v convince_v the_o minister_n call_v by_o the_o magistrate_n of_o error_n do_v raise_v a_o question_n about_o their_o call_n be_v themselves_o neither_o lawful_o choose_v nor_o call_v say_v what_o suffragan_n ordain_v you_o minister_v what_o bishop_n call_v you_o to_o the_o office_n as_o the_o priest_n by_o christ_n they_o question_v not_o his_o work_n which_o they_o can_v find_v no_o fault_n with_o but_o his_o power_n so_o these_o where_o they_o can_v by_o god_n word_n defend_v their_o own_o error_n and_o abuse_n nor_o disprove_v our_o true_a doctrine_n they_o fly_v to_o the_o episcopal_a power_n and_o authority_n as_o if_o they_o do_v possess_v any_o such_o umblamable_a and_o lawful_a power_n when_o they_o neither_o discharge_v the_o office_n nor_o have_v the_o power_n of_o true_a bishop_n wherefore_o let_v no_o true_a sincere_a minister_n of_o christ_n regard_v the_o bark_n of_o these_o man_n but_o as_o content_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o conscience_n and_o his_o calling_n to_o teach_v by_o the_o lawful_a magistrate_n go_v on_o in_o the_o lord_n work_v with_o alacrity_n of_o spirit_n here_o he_o add_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o call_n at_o bern_n by_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o reception_n of_o the_o people_n that_o you_o may_v know_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o magistrate_n call_n and_o p._n 436._o have_v tell_v we_o that_o christianity_n fall_v where_o the_o election_n and_o pastoral_n care_n of_o the_o ministry_n fall_v he_o add_v but_o now_o they_o that_o endeavour_n to_o put_v out_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n boast_v much_o of_o the_o power_n of_o bishop_n arch-bishop_n metropolitan_n patriarck_n and_o the_o roman_a pope_n where_o if_o you_o urge_v they_o to_o it_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v by_o any_o truth_n of_o divine_a institution_n that_o so_o much_o as_o this_o first_o ministerial_a power_n of_o minister_a in_o the_o church_n be_v in_o those_o bishop_n archbishop_n metropolitan_n patriarck_n or_o pope_n that_o be_v in_o these_o church_n lord_n satrape_n let_v they_o prove_v that_o these_o be_v true_a minister_n of_o christ_n i_o strive_v not_o about_o episcopacy_n simple_o in_o itself_o whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v number_v with_o christ_n true_a minister_n but_o the_o controversy_n be_v whether_o such_o bishop_n as_o our_o age_n too_o patient_o tolerate_v be_v to_o be_v number_v with_o christ_n true_a minister_n it_o be_v great_o to_o be_v fear_v lest_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n they_o will_v hear_v that_o dreadful_a word_n from_o god_n depart_v from_o i_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n i_o know_v you_o not_o i_o have_v add_v more_o of_o musculus_fw-la then_o direct_o concern_v the_o point_n now_o in_o hand_n because_o i_o will_v take_v he_o all_o together_o and_o because_o the_o helvetian_o be_v not_o account_v presbyterian_o i_o add_v bullinger_n decad._n 5._o serm._n 3._o p._n mihi_fw-la 377._o 378._o and_o serm._n 4._o p._n 383._o where_o he_o show_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v not_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n that_o presbyter_n and_o bishop_n be_v the_o same_o and_o have_v the_o same_o work_n and_o the_o horrid_a abuse_n that_o come_v into_o the_o church_n by_o the_o degenerate_v of_o episcopacy_n and_o decad._n 5._o serm_n 10._o p._n 491._o that_o in_o latter_a age_n prelate_n and_o bishop_n snatch_v by_o tyranny_n that_o power_n of_o excommunication_n to_o themselves_o which_o before_o be_v use_v by_o the_o pastor_n in_o synod_n in_o common_a and_o sacrilegious_o use_v it_o against_o the_o first_o institution_n have_v tarn_v a_o wholesome_a medicine_n into_o deadly_a poison_n and_o make_v it_o abaminable_a to_o good_a and_o bad_a but_o i_o may_v not_o recite_v all_o wagundus_fw-la be_v no_o presbyterian_a be_v superintendent_n of_o magdeburgh_n first_o and_o after_o of_o wismaria_n and_o after_o of_o jene_fw-fr and_o after_o bishop_n pomeraniensis_n nor_o yet_o math._n judex_n yet_o go_v they_o the_o same_o way_n as_o may_v be_v see_v sytagm_n p._n 1049._o the_o excom_n p._n 1114._o de_fw-fr eccles_n p._n 1135._o the_o minist_n shall_v i_o cite_v all_o that_o be_v say_v by_o those_o that_o never_o be_v call_v presbyterian_o about_o the_o degeneration_n of_o episcopacy_n the_o largeness_n of_o their_o charge_n the_o ruin_n of_o discipline_n by_o their_o tyranny_n ambition_n and_o grasp_a wealth_n and_o title_n when_o they_o neither_o will_v nor_o can_v perform_v the_o work_n i_o mean_v by_o luther_n melancton_n illyricus_n chytraeus_n tzegedine_n bucer_n zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n gryneus_n aretius_n gualther_n pet._n martyr_n paraeus_n chenmitius_n pelargus_n etc._n etc._n i_o shall_v but_o over-weary_a the_o reader_n patience_n i_o only_o add_v that_o if_o the_o church_n of_o france_n belgia_n geneva_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o the_o church_n of_o transilvania_n hungary_n and_o former_o poland_n that_o be_v orthodox_n and_o bobemia_n brandenburg_n saxony_n the_o palatinate_n etc._n etc._n that_o set_v up_o another_o sort_n of_o episcopacy_n have_v find_v that_o the_o old_a or_o english_a species_n will_v have_v do_v the_o ministerial_a work_n it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o they_o will_v all_o have_v reject_v it_o iii_o the_o three_o part_n of_o that_o experience_n which_o i_o allege_v be_v the_o bishop_n own_o 1._o this_o be_v signify_v by_o their_o confession_n before_o name_v ar._n bishop_n usher_v reason_n for_o the_o ancient_a use_n of_o episcopacy_n with_o their_o presbyter_n who_o shall_v be_v acknowledge_v true_a church_n governor_n over_o their_o flock_n be_v fetch_v from_o the_o need_n of_o so_o many_o to_o the_o work_n and_o mr._n stanley_n gower_n late_o of_o dorchester_n be_v wont_a to_o profess_v be_v long_o intimate_v with_o he_o that_o he_o profess_v to_o he_o that_o he_o take_v a_o bishop_n to_o be_v but_o primus_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la of_o the_o same_o order_n and_o every_o presbyter_n a_o governor_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o when_o he_o ask_v he_o why_o then_o he_o will_v be_v a_o primate_n as_o he_o be_v he_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o take_v it_o not_o for_o any_o part_n of_o his_o office_n as_o institute_v by_o christ_n but_o for_o a_o collateral_a dignity_n which_o the_o king_n be_v please_v to_o bestow_v on_o he_o for_o the_o more_o advantageous_a discharge_n of_o his_o spiritual_a office_n what_o bishop_n jewel_n opinion_n be_v to_o the_o like_a purpose_n be_v plain_a enough_o in_o his_o work_n bishop_n reignolds_n that_o now_o be_v profess_v to_o i_o his_o opinion_n to_o be_v the_o same_o when_o he_o take_v the_o bishopric_n and_o when_o he_o see_v dr._n stillingfliet_v book_n that_o no_o form_n of_o church_n government_n be_v
do_v it_o preserve_v the_o kingdom_n of_o navarre_n to_o the_o right_a lord_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o of_o this_o after_o the_o copious_a instance_n of_o h._n fowlis_n and_o after_o that_o volume_n of_o w._n prin._n of_o the_o english_a prelate_n treason_n read_v it_o and_o judge_n 2._o what_o people_n more_o peaceable_a and_o obedient_a to_o their_o superior_n for_o instance_n than_o the_o helvetian_a minister_n have_v be_v who_o yet_o have_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o bishop_n 3._o dr._n pet._n moulin_n junior_n one_o of_o yourselves_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o philanax_n angl._n have_v say_v enough_o to_o confute_v most_o of_o the_o calumny_n against_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o this_o point_n 4._o who_o know_v not_o that_o even_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o that_o when_o episcopacy_n be_v thrive_v apace_o yea_o and_o by_o and_o among_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o yea_o some_o that_o be_v good_a man_n and_o be_v now_o saint_v yet_o tumult_n sedition_n rebellion_n and_o contention_n trouble_v the_o church_n and_o the_o emperor_n and_o magistrate_n as_o frequent_o as_o of_o late_a time_n which_o i_o mention_v not_o to_o abate_v the_o honour_n of_o those_o better_a christian_n but_o 1._o to_o show_v you_o that_o all_o this_o be_v do_v under_o prelacy_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o want_v of_o prelacy_n or_o averseness_n to_o it_o that_o be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o cause_n 2._o that_o these_o distemper_n be_v find_v in_o the_o best_a time_n and_o among_o the_o pure_a church_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v now_o think_v strange_a or_o take_v for_o a_o mark_n of_o a_o bad_a religion_n i_o will_v not_o repeat_v what_o i_o say_v but_o even_o now_o of_o the_o horrid_a tumult_n and_o blood_n shed_v at_o alexandria_n their_o cruel_a murder_v of_o hypatia_n and_o the_o insurrection_n and_o sedition_n even_o of_o the_o holy_a monk_n and_o saint_n cyril_n saint_v of_o the_o execute_a actor_n of_o violence_n on_o the_o governor_n what_o work_v his_o predecessor_n saint_n theophilus_n make_v against_o saint_n chrysostome_n how_o epiphanius_n act_v his_o part_n how_o saint_n hierome_n be_v of_o their_o party_n how_o even_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n in_o several_a synod_n oppose_v and_o depose_v those_o two_o excellent_a bishop_n of_o constantinople_n gregory_n theol._n and_o chrysostome_n have_v be_v say_v before_o even_o at_o the_o election_n of_o chrysostome_n theophilus_n go_v about_o by_o all_o mean_n to_o discredit_v he_o and_o to_o prefer_v to_o the_o place_n one_o isidore_n a_o priest_n of_o his_o own_o church_n and_o that_o you_o may_v know_v how_o loyalty_n prevail_v against_o the_o own_n of_o tyrant_n when_o they_o get_v the_o better_a you_o shall_v further_o hear_v why_o theophilus_n set_v so_o much_o by_o this_o isidore_n because_o he_o undertake_v for_o he_o a_o perilous_a piece_n of_o service_n say_v socrates_n li._n 6._o c._n 2._o viz_o when_o the_o emporour_n theod●sius_n wage_v war_n with_o maximus_n the_o tyrant_n theophilus_n send_v present_v direct_v to_o the_o emperor_n with_o two_o letter_n one_o to_o theodosius_n and_o one_o to_o maximus_n charge_v isidorus_n to_o present_v he_o that_o get_v the_o better_a with_o the_o gift_n and_o one_o of_o the_o letter_n isidore_n be_v careful_a of_o his_o business_n go_v diligent_o about_o this_o feat_n get_v he_o to_o rome_n and_o hearken_v after_o the_o victory_n but_o his_o fetch_n be_v not_o long_o ere_o it_o be_v find_v out_o for_o his_o reader_n that_o accompany_v he_o steal_v away_o his_o letter_n whereupon_o isidore_n be_v afraid_a to_o be_v take_v with_o the_o manner_n take_v his_o heel_n in_o all_o haste_n to_o alexandria_n this_o be_v it_o that_o make_v theophilus_n labour_v so_o carnest_o for_o isidore_n but_o all_o that_o be_v of_o the_o emperor_n court_n prefer_v john_n to_o the_o bishopric_n and_o afterward_o when_o as_o many_o charge_a theophilus_n with_o heinous_a crime_n and_o present_v to_o the_o bishop_n than_o present_a libel_n and_o article_n against_o he_o some_o for_o this_o thing_n and_o some_o for_o that_o eutropius_n one_o of_o the_o emporours_n chamber_n have_v get_v the_o article_n and_o inditement_n show_v they_o to_o theophilus_n bid_v he_o choose_v whether_o he_o will_v create_v john_n bishop_n or_o stand_v at_o the_o bar_n and_o answer_n to_o the_o crime_n that_o be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n theophilus_n be_v so_o afraid_a with_o this_o that_o present_o he_o consent_v to_o the_o installing_n of_o john_n what_o will_v have_v be_v say_v of_o one_o of_o we_o now_o if_o we_o have_v not_o only_o comply_v with_o a_o victorious_a tyrant_n but_o also_o so_o juggle_v with_o present_n and_o double_a letter_n before_o hand_n i_o do_v myself_o disowne_n oliver_n cromwell_n open_o to_o his_o death_n and_o yet_o because_o after_o twelve_o year_n possession_n of_o the_o usurper_n i_o do_v but_o dedicate_v two_o book_n to_o his_o son_n richard_n who_o i_o never_o see_v nor_o hear_v from_o only_o to_o encourage_v he_o to_o befriend_v truth_n and_o unity_n against_o papist_n and_o sectary_n who_o then_o threaten_v all_o and_o this_o when_o the_o royalist_n themselves_o give_v out_o that_o he_o be_v real_o for_o the_o restoration_n of_o the_o king_n this_o be_v make_v the_o odious_a crime_n in_o i_o as_o a_o thing_n deserve_v great_a infamy_n do_v i_o need_v to_o recite_v how_o great_a leo_n himself_o and_o other_o roman_a and_o italian_a bishop_n own_v the_o barbarian_a conqueror_n no_o wonder_n than_o if_o they_o too_o early_o take_v theodoricus_n for_o their_o king_n set_v over_o they_o by_o god_n who_o be_v a_o better_a man_n than_o the_o rest_n and_o have_v at_o last_o a_o better_a tittle_n say_v socrates_n further_o li._n 6._o c._n 7._o when_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v toss_v with_o these_o troublesome_a storm_n of_o rebellion_n such_o as_o be_v promote_v to_o the_o reverend_a function_n of_o priest_n hood_n be_v at_o distraction_n among_o themselves_o to_o the_o great_a slander_n of_o christian_a religion_n then_o be_v one_o set_v against_o the_o other_o the_o original_n of_o which_o pestilent_a schism_n come_v from_o egypt_n and_o the_o occasion_n be_v as_o follow_v there_o be_v a_o question_n broach_v a_o little_a before_o whether_o god_n be_v a_o body_n make_v after_o the_o likeness_n and_o form_n of_o man_n or_o whether_o he_o be_v without_o body_n and_o void_a of_o all_o corporal_a shape_n ●●●e●lion_n hereof_o there_o arise_v sundry_a contertion_n and_o quarrel_n while_o some_o affirm_v this_o and_o other_o that_o some_o of_o the_o rude_a and_o unlearned_a sort_n of_o religious_a man_n think_v that_o god_n be_v corporeal_a and_o of_o the_o form_n and_o figure_n of_o man_n but_o the_o great_a part_n condemn_v they_o with_o their_o heretical_a opinion_n affirm_v that_o god_n have_v no_o bodily_a substance_n or_o shape_n of_o which_o opinion_n be_v theophilus_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n so_o that_o in_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n he_o inveigh_v bitter_o against_o the_o contrary_a the_o worshipper_n of_o egypt_n understand_v this_o leave_v their_o religious_a house_n come_v to_o alexandria_n flock_v about_o theophilus_n condemn_v he_o for_o a_o wicked_a person_n and_o seek_v to_o bereave_v he_o of_o his_o life_n theophilus_n be_v make_v privy_a to_o their_o conspiracy_n be_v wonderful_a pensive_a devise_v how_o he_o may_v escape_v their_o hand_n and_o save_v his_o life_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o come_v into_o their_o presence_n he_o salute_v they_o courteous_o and_o say_v thus_o to_o they_o when_o i_o fasten_v my_o eye_n on_o you_o methinks_v i_o see_v the_o lively_a face_n of_o god_n with_o these_o word_n the_o rash_a heat_n of_o the_o unruly_a monk_n be_v delay_v and_o they_o say_v if_o that_o be_v true_a that_o thou_o say_v that_o the_o countenance_n of_o god_n be_v no_o otherwise_o than_o we_o accurse_v then_o the_o work_n of_o oregen_n for_o divers_a of_o his_o book_n do_v impugn_v our_o opinion_n but_o if_o thou_o refuse_v to_o do_v this_o assure_v thyself_o to_o receive_v at_o our_o hand_n the_o punishment_n due_a to_o the_o impious_a and_o open_a enemy_n of_o god_n nay_o say_v theoph._n i_o will_v do_v that_o which_o seem_v good_a in_o your_o eye_n thus_o you_o see_v what_o the_o monk_n be_v but_o will_v you_o see_v what_o theophilus_n be_v it_o follow_v the_o religious_a house_n in_o egypt_n be_v oversee_v of_o four_o worthy_a man_n brother_n dioscorus_n ammonius_n eusebius_n and_o eutburmus_n their_o great_a fame_n and_o excellency_n make_v theophilus_n force_v they_o out_o of_o their_o belove_a solitude_n and_o make_v dioscorus_n a_o bishop_n and_o two_o other_o to_o live_v with_o himself_o at_o last_o their_o conscience_n be_v prick_v perceive_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v set_v upon_o heap_v and_o hoard_v of_o money_n world_n and_o that_o all_o their_o labour_n
socrat._v l._n 7._o c._n 44._o joh._n 5._o 22._o gen._n 3._o 15._o joh._n 17._o 2._o mat._n 28._o 18_o 19_o eph._n 1._o 21_o 22._o 22._o the_o london_n minister_n thanksgiving_n to_o the_o king_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o print_n as_o also_o their_o desire_n of_o b._n usher_n primitive_a model_n of_o government_n government_n now_o 18_o year_n this_o be_v write_v 9_o year_n ago_o whitgift_n ●a●avia_fw-la vid._n &_o p._n 104._o &_o 110_o 111._o 120_o 121._o 1_o cor._n 16._o 1_o 2._o bilson_n hooker_n answer_v as_o far_o as_o our_o cause_n require_v remember_v also_o that_o hooker_n three_o book_n be_v write_v to_o prove_v that_o no_o one_o form_n be_v command_v in_o scripture_n therefore_o not_o the_o prelatical_a how_o little_a do_v this_o agree_v with_o dr._n hammond_n ☞_o and_o yet_o must_v i_o sweat_v never_o to_o consent_v to_o any_o alteration_n bishop_n downame_v answer_v he_o fall_v after_o under_o the_o frown_n of_o bishop_n laud_n himself_o his_o book_n of_o perseverance_n be_v prohibit_v prohibit_v ambrose_n in_o eph._n 4._o aug._n qu._n in_o vet_n &_o n._n test_n q._n 101._o cypr._n l._n 3._o ep_n 17._o council_n carth._n graec._n c._n 43._o carth._n 2._o c._n 4._o conc._n arausic_n c._n ●_o ●_o the_o prelate_n pretence_n for_o innovation_n all_o the_o cause_n be_v lay_v on_o magistrate_n magistrate_n do_v a_o public_a church_n pastor_n govern_v but_o private_o what_o mean_v he_o by_o that_o which_o can_v be_v good_a sense_n a_o private_a man_n may_v rule_v private_o that_o be_v by_o counsel_n judicium_fw-la publicum_fw-la be_v the_o officer_n judgement_n judgement_n in_o my_o treat_n of_o the_o true_a way_n of_o concord_n i_o have_v also_o disprove_v the_o instance_n of_o rome_n and_o alexandria_n bish_n hall_n petavius_n bish_n andrews_n b._n usher_n usher_n lib._n 3._o c._n 30._o the_o doctrine_n christian_n which_o augustine_n seem_v to_o approve_v the_o dispute_n at_o the_o isle_n of_o wight_n john_n forbes_n grotius_n ☞_o be_v it_o know_v to_o posterity_n that_o if_o the_o prelate_n will_v have_v grant_v we_o but_o so_o much_o liberty_n our_o distract_a church_n may_v have_v have_v concord_n j._n d._n etc._n etc._n m._n ant._n de_fw-fr dom._n spalatensis_n spalatensis_n yea_o never_o into_o one_o parish_n of_o ten_o or_o twenty_o ☞_o ☜_o dr._n hammond_n answer_v the_o annotation_n annotation_n quemad_a modum_fw-la hodi●_n ab_fw-la aliqu●t_fw-la secul●s_fw-la antioch_n in_o a_o side_n patr._n no●_n est_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la u●be_fw-la un●●_n nomen_fw-la habet_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o meredin_n ad_fw-la ripa●n_fw-la ch●bar_fw-la in_fw-la finibus_fw-la mesopotainae_fw-la jos_n scaliger_n animad_fw-la in_o euseb_n pag._n 211._o yet_o i_o confess_v that_o he_o that_o convert_v many_o caeteris_fw-la paribus_fw-la be_v fit_a to_o be_v choose_v for_o their_o pastor_n on_o which_o account_n greg._n nazianz._n be_v choose_v at_o constantinople_n for_o the_o success_n of_o his_o ministry_n against_o arianism_n and_o in_o my_o church-history_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o of_o a_o council_n that_o decree_v that_o if_o a_o bishop_n neglect_v to_o turn_v any_o of_o his_o city_n from_o heresy_n he_o that_o convert_v they_o shall_v have_v they_o for_o his_o flock_n which_o show_v that_o there_o may_v on_o just_a cause_n be_v then_o more_o bishop_n and_o church_n than_o one_o in_o a_o city_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o necessary_o measure_v by_o the_o compass_n of_o ground_n but_o church_n may_v be_v mix_v among_o each_o other_o as_o to_o habitation_n on_o such_o occasion_n ●●●●_o chrysostom_n de_fw-fr s●cerdotio_fw-la cap._n 17_o p._n 57_o even_o about_o so_o small_a a_o part_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n charge_v as_o the_o care_n of_o virgin_n say_v but_o if_o any_o one_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o bishop_n to_o meddle_v with_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o let_v he_o know_v that_o upon_o he_o will_v fall_v all_o the_o care_n of_o virgin_n duty_n and_o so_o all_o the_o accusation_n which_o shall_v be_v cast_v on_o virgin_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v much_o better_a if_o he_o administer_a the_o business_n himself_o he_o shall_v be_v void_a of_o those_o cause_n which_o he_o must_v sustain_v by_o other_o offence_n thus_o leave_v that_o administration_n to_o live_v in_o fear_n of_o give_v account_n or_o be_v judge_v for_o the_o sin_n which_o other_o do_v commit_v add_v also_o that_o he_o that_o perform_v this_o office_n by_o himself_o transact_v all_o with_o great_a facility_n but_o he_o that_o be_v necessitate_v to_o do_v it_o by_o the_o vicarious_a labour_n of_o other_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a business_n to_o he_o to_o persuade_v all_o man_n mind_n well_o to_o perform_v the_o work_n certain_o he_o himself_o have_v not_o so_o much_o remission_n of_o his_o labour_n by_o abstain_v from_o that_o office_n as_o he_o must_v sustain_v business_n and_o trouble_n from_o they_o that_o resist_v and_o strive_v against_o his_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n and_o if_o so_o great_a a_o bishop_n as_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n must_v not_o do_v so_o small_a a_o part_n of_o his_o work_n per_fw-la alios_fw-la alas_o what_o a_o life_n do_v our_o diocesan_n live_v ●●at_a christ_n mat._n 18._o in_o his_o ●●●l_n the_o church_n ●●an●th_o ●●ll_v the_o congregation_n assembly_n or_o multitude_n and_o not_o only_o ●●_o tell_v a_o absent_a di●●●san_n bishop_n when_o perhaps_o ●ne_a ●●●●●●_o 20_o 4●_n 6●●●les_v to_o tell_v he_o see_v grotius_n himself_o in_o his_o a●●t_n on_o the_o text_n and_o his_o ●●●●ort_n of_o sertullian_n and_o other_o see_v also_o e●●●mus_n on_o the_o place_n and_o many_o other_o say_v the_o same_o though_o some_o will_v have_v the_o church_n to_o be_v only_o the_o bishop_n or_o as_o other_o the_o presbytery_n ru●herfords_n contrary_a reason_n be_v but_o a_o fallacy_n viz._n the_o same_o church_n that_o must_v be_v hear_v must_v be_v tell_v but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o congregation_n but_o the_o elder_n that_o must_v be_v hear_v ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr the_o church_n consise_v of_o the_o pastor_n and_o people_n must_v be_v tell_v and_o they_o have_v all_o ear_n that_o without_o confuson_n can_v hear_v at_o once_o but_o they_o can_v without_o confusion_n all_o speak_v at_o once_o therefore_o one_o must_v speak_v for_o all_o for_o this_o argument_n will_v equal_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o presbytery_n or_o court_n or_o many_o minister_n that_o shall_v be_v tell_v if_o it_o be_v but_o one_o that_o be_v to_o speak_v to_o the_o ●inner_n and_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the●_n all_o speak_v to_o he_o as_o the_o chief_a judge_n speak_v for_o all_o the_o bench_n and_o the_o prosecutor_n for_o all_o the_o synod_n and_o yet_o the_o court_n or_o synod_n may_v be_v complain_v to_o so_o be_v it_o hear_v the_o sam●_n man_n ●ay_v see_v with_o two_o eye_n and_o hear_v with_o two_o ear_n and_o yet_o speak_v but_o with_o one_o tongue_n yet_o this_o reason_n once_o deceive_v i_o see_v then_o that_o christ_n institute_v thus_o much_o of_o discipline_n in_o each_o particular_a church_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o by_o his_o institution_n every_o particular_a church_n associate_v for_o presential_a communion_n shall_v have_v one_o or_o more_o ●●●tors_n authorize_v for_o so_o much_o discipline_n which_o be_v that_o which_o we_o plead_v for_o for_o disput_n of_o church_n gover_n 2._o that_o unjust_a excommunication_n bind_v not_o see_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o most_o approve_a casuist_n in_o bapt._n fragoso_n de_fw-fr regim_n reipub._n p._n 1._o l._n 1._o pag._n 112._o col._n 2._o &_o gregor_n sayrus_n to._n 2._o l._n 1._o c._n 17._o num_fw-la 2._o 5._o 8._o etc._n etc._n and_o indeed_o they_o conclude_v that_o out_o of_o the_o case_n of_o scandal_n magistrate_n law_n unjust_a material_o that_o be_v to_o the_o common_a hurt_n or_o that_o be_v against_o common_a good_a bind_v not_o in_o conscience_n ut_fw-la id._n fragoso_n ib._n p._n 112._o n._n 234._o 336._o w●●_n cit_v the_o consent_n of_o silve_v tabien_fw-fr bald._n bartol_n hostiens_fw-la &_o doctorum_fw-la communiter_fw-la so_o that_o mr._n john_n humphrey_n be_v not_o singular_a in_o his_o resolution_n of_o this_o case_n though_o i_o give_v he_o many_o caution_n and_o limitation_n in_o the_o letter_n part_n of_o which_o he_o have_v print_v in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n 2_o cor._n 5._o 19_o act._n 26._o 18._o mat._n 28._o 20._o 20._o hierome_n say_v he_o die_v in_o the_o eight_o year_n of_o nero._n aid_n ●oi_fw-fr scaliger_n anim._n in_o euseb_n dorothaeun_fw-mi resutantem_fw-la pag._n 195._o 1._o petavius_n 2._o bishop_n downame_n 3._o master_n mede_n 4._o bilson_n 5._o grotius_n 6._o bishop_n jeremy_n tailor_n 7._o doctor_n hammond_n 8._o all_o the_o divine_n in_o the_o same_o cause_n cyprian_n in_o the_o separation_n of_o feliciss_fw-la and_o sive_z presbyter_n epist_n 44._o ed._n goul_n pag._n 93._o say_v deus_fw-la unus_fw-la &_o
this_o power_n do_v not_o degrade_v the_o presbyter_n nullify_v the_o church_n under_o they_o and_o depose_v the_o ancient_a sort_n of_o episcopacy_n quantum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la and_o set_v up_o another_o humane_a sort_n of_o church_n call_v diocesan_n and_o of_o archbishop_n turn_v into_o bishop_n infimi_fw-la gradus_fw-la in_o their_o stead_n together_o with_o a_o new_a species_n of_o half-presbyter_n 1._o how_o far_o whitgift_n disputation_n against_o cartwright_n be_v guilty_a of_o this_o whitgift_n overlooking_a the_o true_a question_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o reader_n only_o i_o must_v say_v for_o he_o that_o when_o his_o adversary_n stand_v most_o upon_o the_o denial_n of_o all_o superior_a episcopacy_n it_o be_v his_o part_n to_o prove_v what_o be_v deny_v and_o i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o than_o that_o whitgift_n oft_o profess_v as_o dr._n stillingfleet_n have_v collect_v out_o of_o he_o that_o god_n have_v in_o scripture_n prescribe_v no_o one_o sort_n of_o church-government_n and_o therefore_o not_o the_o prelatical_a 2._o i_o do_v not_o expect_v that_o ever_o this_o controversy_n shall_v be_v handle_v by_o ●a●avia_fw-la two_o more_o judicious_a adversary_n than_o saravia_n and_o beza_n be_v and_o as_o beza_n protest_v against_o a_o parity_n and_o plead_v for_o a_o prostasie_n desire_v that_o which_o he_o call_v divine_a episcopacy_n tolerate_v and_o submit_v to_o that_o which_o he_o call_v humane_a episcopacy_n and_o flat_o oppose_v only_o that_o which_o he_o call_v satanical_a episcopacy_n so_o saravia_n profess_v p._n 1_o 2._o &_o p._n defens_n 4_o 5._o that_o the_o general_n nature_n of_o the_o evangelical_n ministry_n common_a both_o to_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n contain_v these_o three_o thing_n 1._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n 2._o the_o communication_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 3._o the_o authority_n of_o church-government_n and_o only_o plead_v that_o in_o this_o last_o the_o power_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v not_o equal_a but_o the_o bishop_n power_n be_v principal_a in_o government_n which_o grant_v the_o main_a question_n which_o we_o nonconformi_v now_o contend_v for_o and_o i_o confess_v that_o saravia_n write_n be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a that_o bring_v i_o to_o suspect_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v successor_n in_o the_o point_n of_o government_n as_o be_v but_o a_o ordinary_a and_o durable_a part_n of_o their_o office_n which_o argument_n he_o have_v better_a manage_v than_o any_o man_n else_o that_o i_o have_v see_v and_o p._n 12._o ib._n he_o grant_v that_o the_o 70_o disciple_n be_v not_o under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o 12_o apostle_n he_o grant_v that_o choose_a senior_n of_o the_o laity_n may_v be_v great_a assistant_n in_o the_o government_n yea_o def._n 1._o 8._o p._n 83._o he_o say_v that_o in_o 121._o the_o absence_n of_o paul_n and_o his_o assistant_n the_o church_n of_o crete_n be_v whole_o rule_v till_o titus_n ordain_v they_o pastor_n by_o such_o elder_n a_fw-la senioribus_fw-la quos_fw-la ratio_fw-la &_o natura_fw-la in_o quavis_fw-la societate_fw-la that_fw-mi non_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la quales_fw-la sunt_fw-la natu_fw-la majores_fw-la &_o quotquot_fw-la aliqua_fw-la virtute_fw-la in_o populo_fw-la excellunt_fw-la quibus_fw-la defer_v natura_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la docuit_fw-la quibus_fw-la addo_fw-la eos_fw-la quos_fw-la tunc_fw-la temporis_fw-la passim_fw-la dona_fw-la sp._n sancti_fw-la venia_fw-la excitabant_fw-la sed_fw-la nulli_fw-la loco_fw-la alligabant_fw-la and_o no_o wonder_n for_o he_o affirm_v that_o in_o time_n of_o public_a corruption_n of_o doctrine_n any_o man_n that_o be_v learned_a and_o able_a and_o fit_a must_v propugne_v and_o defend_v the_o truth_n as_o he_o have_v ability_n and_o opportunity_n or_o else_o be_v judge_v for_o hide_v his_o talent_n as_o the_o unprofitable_a servant_n pag._n 23._o cap._n 2._o yet_o do_v he_o most_o improbable_o imagine_v that_o rome_n and_o corinth_n have_v no_o proper_a pastor_n when_o paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o they_o when_o as_o paul_n have_v dwell_v a_o year_n and_o half_a at_o corinth_n when_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o church_n and_o when_o among_o the_o corinthian_n there_o be_v so_o many_o prophet_n instructer_n speaker_n of_o language_n interpreter_n etc._n etc._n that_o paul_n be_v fain_o to_o regulate_v and_o restrain_v they_o in_o their_o church-meeting_n that_o they_o may_v not_o overdo_v and_o hinder_v one_o another_o and_o yet_o be_v these_o people_n without_o any_o proper_a pastor_n without_o a_o prelate_n its_o like_a they_o be_v yea_o when_o paul_n direct_v they_o to_o deliver_v the_o incestuous_a man_n to_o satan_n and_o to_o exercise_v church-discipline_n upon_o other_o that_o be_v scandalous_a do_v not_o this_o intimate_v that_o they_o have_v among_o they_o such_o as_o be_v empower_v to_o do_v it_o if_o only_o transient_o and_o occasional_o they_o can_v worship_n god_n public_o and_o deliver_v sacrament_n and_o govern_v the_o church_n but_o transient_o and_o rare_o how_o do_v they_o spend_v the_o lord_n day_n when_o those_o transient_a guide_n be_v absent_a do_v the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o people_n who_o saravia_n think_v be_v to_o exercise_v the_o foresay_a discipline_n also_o consecrate_v and_o administer_v the_o 2._o sacrament_n or_o public_o pray_v and_o worship_n god_n without_o a_o pastor_n be_v they_o every_o lord_n day_n to_o deposit_v their_o collection_n and_o have_v no_o pastor_n and_o so_o no_o church-assembly_n have_v they_o so_o many_o sect_n and_o false_a teacher_n to_o trouble_v they_o and_o yet_o no_o pastor_n when_o clem._n rom._n so_o short_o after_o write_v so_o much_o to_o reconcile_v the_o pastor_n and_o people_n that_o disagree_v and_o when_o paul_n tell_v the_o roman_n and_o corinthian_n what_o officer_n god_n set_v in_o the_o church_n be_v it_o like_v there_o be_v none_o fix_v among_o they_o and_o i_o must_v note_v how_o great_a a_o charge_n he_o lay_v on_o the_o bishop_n when_o resp_n ad_fw-la n._n p._n 10._o art_n 12._o he_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v aequè_fw-la imo_fw-la magis_fw-la proprius_fw-la singularum_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la sua_fw-la dioceseos_fw-la pastor_n illis_fw-la qui_fw-la ibi_fw-la praesunt_fw-la &_o resident_a utpote_fw-la ad_fw-la quem_fw-la cura_fw-la praecipua_fw-la illorum_fw-la locorum_fw-la pertineat_fw-la the_o bishop_n have_v more_o charge_n or_o care_n of_o all_o the_o parish_n in_o his_o diocese_n than_o the_o present_a pastor_n have_v o_o dreadful_a undertake_n ad_fw-la quem_fw-la prima_fw-la &_o praecipua_fw-la cura_fw-la omnium_fw-la incumbet_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la ipse_fw-la suum_fw-la agnoscit_fw-la gregem_fw-la &_o singulis_fw-la quibus_fw-la manus_fw-la imponit_fw-la etc._n etc._n how_o many_o hundred_o thousand_o individual_n then_o have_v the_o bishop_n of_o london_n this_o particular_a charge_n of_o who_o name_n he_o never_o hear_v and_o who_o face_n he_o never_o see_v oportet_fw-la enim_fw-la episcopum_fw-la omnes_fw-la quantum_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la qui_fw-la ipsius_fw-la curae_fw-la commissi_fw-la sunt_fw-la nosse_fw-la the_o bishop_n must_v know_v all_o his_o flock_n if_o possible_a and_o must_v he_o have_v a_o flock_n then_o which_o he_o can_v possible_o know_v nor_o never_o see_v one_o of_o a_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o of_o they_o with_o any_o particular_a knowledge_n at_o least_n and_o cont._n quaest_n &_o resp_n beza_n p._n 103._o he_o approve_v of_o zanchy_n judgement_n that_o ceremony_n and_o thing_n indifferent_a be_v leave_v free_a and_o the_o church_n free_a in_o they_o and_o defence_n p._n 286._o he_o say_v primum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la omnium_fw-la &_o presbyterorum_fw-la unum_fw-la esse_fw-la ordinem_fw-la constituo_fw-la i_o maintain_v that_o there_o be_v one_o order_n of_o all_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n therefore_o they_o can_v differ_v but_o gradu_fw-la as_o a_o deacon_n and_o archdeacon_n and_o again_o ib._n p._n 286._o ministerii_fw-la autem_fw-la evangelici_fw-la unitas_fw-la probatur_fw-la ab_fw-la horum_fw-la unitate_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la ita_fw-la loquar_fw-la identitate_fw-la eandem_fw-la enim_fw-la veritatis_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la omnes_fw-la orthodoxi_fw-la docent_fw-la eadem_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la ministrant_fw-la eandem_fw-la censuram_fw-la exercent_fw-la tantum_fw-la provinciarum_fw-la est_fw-la inaequalitas_fw-la &_o graduum_fw-la diversitas_fw-la the_o unity_n of_o the_o gospel_n ministry_n be_v prove_v from_o the_o unity_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v identity_n of_o these_o all_o that_o be_v orthodox_n teach_v the_o same_o true_a doctrine_n administer_v the_o same_o sacrament_n exercise_v the_o same_o censure_n only_o there_o be_v a_o inequality_n of_o province_n and_o a_o diversity_n of_o degree_n thus_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o rational_a defender_n of_o prelacy_n give_v away_o their_o cause_n 3._o bishop_n bilson_n a_o most_o learned_a and_o judicious_a man_n also_o say_v more_o bilson_n for_o episcopacy_n than_o any_o of_o our_o late_a writer_n and_o in_o my_o judgement_n say_v more_o against_o the_o office_n of_o ecclesiastical_a elder_n distinct_a from_o pastor_n than_o can_v be_v answer_v but_o to_o our_o two_o main_a question_n beforementioned_a of_o a_o bishop_n over_o